Prelude to a Journey
Tenchi walked up the path from the school bus
stop, thinking about the upcoming summer vacation
with mixed
emotions. He wasn't looking forward to the many chores he knew were
in store for him.
The break from schoolwork would be nice, and he
would get to spend more time with the "Family."
The
living situation in the Masaki home caused him to have mixed feelings
as well.
He was almost to the house (that's funny, Ryoko
usually would have jumped me by now). The daily
occurance, at a
different spot everyday to prevent Aeka from intercepting her,
usually took place
before he was in sight of the house. A bit of
concern began in the back of his mind. Aeka wasn't
there either,
trying to get to him first. It was the game they played, each trying
to greet him first,
with Aeka trying not to appear the aggressive
one, but trying to stop Ryoko all the same.
It was the same
old rivalry. After a while it seemed like they were almost friends,
then it would
revert back to the near blood-feud. Ever changing
patterns, never predictable, trying new
strategies against each
other. The endless cycle. He felt that it was all his fault at
times.
He just didn't know how to handle it. He cared for both of
them so much, but he didn't know
how to handle the raw affection
that was heaped upon him - or to find the solution to his
nearly
impossible situation. The worst part was that he wanted to
decide in the worst way, but didn't
want to hurt anyone in the
process. So the battles raged on. What's a young guy to do?
As
he walked in the door, he saw from the shoes that everyone was home.
He heard voices
from the dining room. (It's quiet, but I guess
everthing's okay)
He walked in to find everyone sitting at the
table. They all seemed a little subdued. "Hello eveyone!",
he
said in his most cheerful voice. Aeka and Ryoko perked up a little,
"Hello Tenchi!", then the rest
greeted him in turn. Then
his Grandfather,"Hello, Tenchi, please walk with me the the
shrine."
Yosho and Tenchi made their way up the steps up
to the Masaki Shrine. "Grandfather, why was
everyone so quiet
when I got home?"
"I told them about your upcoming training."
"Oh? Why would they get so quiet about that? We train together all the time?"
"This is
different Tenchi. Since you were very young I have taught you how to
fight, I have worked
very hard to train you in all the fighting
techniques I know. There is no more that I can show you.
You have
reached a training plateau. Your learning curve is flattening out. It
is no fault of yours
or mine. The problem lies in the lack of
variety. You have only trained to fight against me. Other
than
actual combat, of course."
"So are we going to have visitors to come and spar with me?"
"No, you are going away for the whole summer."
Tenchi was stunned. The whole summer? Wait a second-no chores all summer!
Alright! But...none of the girls either.
"Grandfather, why can't I just stay here and spar with Ryoko? She's pretty good..."
"No, I have many reasons for you to go away and train, Ryoko is one of them."
(Now I know how they felt when I walked in.)
At the shrine, Yosho told Tenchi
of his upcoming travels. He was going to visit ten of the best
sword
masters on Earth, spending five days training with each. His travel
arrangements were
a little unusual though...
"Grandfather? Can I ask you for some advice?"
"Yes?"
"I
am very confused. Confused about my feelings towards the girls, Ryoko
and Aeka. They
fight all the time over me, and I feel that it is
my fault sometimes because I haven't made up my mind
about them
yet. I feel I have to choose, to end it, but I think I may need help
deciding. I don't want
to go away for the whole summer and leave
them hanging, so to speak."
"You cannot choose."
"I know, that is what I just said..."
"NO", Yosho said as he got to his feet, looking down at Tenchi.
(What did I do now?)
"What would you do? Place them on a scale,
weighing out the good points and the bad? The advantages
and
disadvantages of the two? Deciding which offers better opportunities?
More fun? It is not a decision
you can make. Why not just have
someone older and wiser choose for you, an arranged marriage?
Hmm?"
"No, Grandfather. I wouldn't want that either."
"So, my advice is to follow your heart in
this matter. When you know, you know. But don't try to put
a
timetable on it."
"So if I don't know before my journey..." Tenchi trailed off, already knowing the answer.
"You have ten days left before you go, I suggest you concentrate on final exams until then.
But first, show me what you have learned." As Yosho produced two bokken out of nowhere.
They took up fighting stances on either side of the
small field outside the shrine. The wind had
picked up a bit,
making the tree branches sway. They cast alternating swaths of shade
and
sunlight across the field, and the mock combatants. Yosho
lifted his bokken in both hands
vertically above his head, (come
to me Grandson, don't hold back) Tenchi ran at him, bokken
raised
diagonally next to his right shoulder. Yosho jumped into the air,
bringing the wooden
blade down. Tenchi swung his out in front to
block it - then dropped to one knee ducking the
downward slash to
deliver a strike to the stomach - the instant he should have felt the
impact
and didn't - he desperately swung the bokken around his
head and dropped it down behind his
back, feeling the mighty
impact of the other blade. Splinters flew as he barely parried
the
strike. He spun about in time to parry another. From offensive
to defensive in a flash. He
held his own for a while, but began to
wear down. Was that a drop of sweat on his Grandfathers
forehead?
Was he actually giving as good as he got? Suddenly, they locked
blades together.
Yosho swung his leg in a front sweep, Tenchi
falling over backwards - then rolled smoothly over
his shoulder,
coming up in a kneel - sword blocking a diagonal strike. Standing to
deliver a
strike of his own - which Yosho barely parried. Tenchi
saw this - and for the first time in his
life, he thought he might
actually be winning. These thoughts gave him a lift, and he
concentrated
on blocking a new flurry of strikes - on the
defensive again. Suddenly, his grndfathers sword
starting moving
in ways that were hard for the eyes to see. He's changing his
technique to
throw me off balance. He remembered this one, which
he hadn't quite mastered yet. It used
the moving shadows and
sunlight to mask the movement of the sword. (Better try to
work
around to get the sun behind me where the technique had its
weakness.) Time for some
improvisation. On the offensive he
stabbed straight forward, as Yosho swept the blade
aside, Tenchi
spun stepping forward and wound up back to back with his opponent,
then he
dove and rolled, popping back up to his feet, sun at his
back. Now Yosho was on the
defensive, the sun in his eyes now as
it lowered on the horizon. Tenchi saw an opening,
but it was a
setup to draw him in, he barely blocked the next strike. He quickly
shuffled
back and was on the defensive again. Then offensive, and
back again. Then he noticed
the sweat on his Grandfathers head,
not an imagined drop, it ran freely. Then they met
each others
swords, simultaneously delivering mighty strikes with all the power
they had...
And both bokken, having had enough, shattered into kindling.
The sun set at that moment. The breeze began to die
down. Yosho smiled. He was ready
for the journey, (My Grandson
will soon surpass me. I hope that this idea of mine helps him
to
work out his problems.)
Tenchi was silent. He couldn't believe
it. (all these years, all this training, it is paying off. I
never
in my wildest dreams imagined I would ever be able to match
him.)
Both were feeling elated for the same reason - success.
On as student and one as teacher.
Yosho bowed to Tenchi, who
returned it. Then ran to his Grandfather and hugged him.
No words
needed to be exchanged, they both fully understood what just
happened.
"You need to practice the Wind and Sun technique a bit more Tenchi."
"Yes Grandfather, lets go have dinner."
It was a quiet dinner. Yosho had
laid down the law: No distracting Tenchi from his studies.
No
fighting between Aeka and Ryoko - verbal or otherwise. No pleading
for him not to leave,
as he had little to say about the matter.
Being the elder of the household, a grandfather, a
Prince, big
brother, and arguably the greatest swordsman alive granted him a bit
of authority
when he decided to use it. He needed it all to
restrain this bunch for ten days...
Ryoko was having none
of it. (Oh sure, I'll obey now, act the little subdued space pirate,
but
when nobody is looking, yeah baby! And no way am I going
without my Tenchi for the whole
summer. I'll find him or follow
him somehow. I miss him already and he is sitting right here!)
Washuu
was not pleased at her daughters thoughts (I'm not helping her find
him. I at least will
follow Lord Yoshos wishes. You're on your own
little Ryoko...)
Aeka was not happy (Oh, but I will miss
him so much! I hate to think of him out there, away from
me. It
will be so lonely without him here. At least that... that... Ryoko
won't be all over him for
a while, and he'll have a chance to
think about me without her interupting all the time.)
Tenchi (This is the most peaceful dinner I've had in a while. It's almost too quiet.)
After dinner, Ryoko and Aeka disappeared, Mihoshi and Sasami went to watch TV, Washuu left
for her lab, and
Tenchi attended to his studies. (Final exams! If I don't know this
stuff by now I'll
never know it.) It was difficult to concentrate.
In a way he was excited about the trip. He would
be seeing new
things, meeting new people, trying different foods, and no chores for
the whole
summer! (Study, study, wouldn't want to fail a
exam.)
Ryoko hovered outside his window, watching. See wanted
to be by his side, but she didn't want
to get in trouble with
Yosho so soon. If she went in there with him Aeka would know
because
of her uncanny ability to get in the way. Then all hell
would break loose and she'd probably get
sent to the cave for a
few more centuries. Still, just watching him would get her by. (As
long
as I don't disturb him I'm not breaking any rules am I? Oh
well, I'll just relax here for a while.)
She settled onto a ledge,
careful to make no noise and remain in the shadows. She had
been
watching him his entire life, and old habits die hard.
Aeka
had settled into her room, lying on her futon, lost in thought. She
left the door open listening
for telltale sounds of Ryoko
intruding on Tenchi. Where is she I wonder? After a while Sasami
came
upstairs. "I'm going to miss him too Aeka," said
the younger princess, trying not to let her voice
break. Aeka
looked over at her sister, and saw the sadness in her eyes. "We
won't see him for so long!"
"Sasami, it will be
alright. Listen, Yosho said we could write to Tenchi. You could send
him some
care packages. You know he won't be eating as well as he
does here."
She brightened at this thought,"You think he would like that?"
"No doubt about it!"
Tenchi at his desk, was feeling a bit tired and put
his head down,(I'll just rest my eyes for a moment)
and drifted
off into sleep. Dreams came rapidly, as he had so much on his mind.
Aeka and Ryoko,
even fighting over him in his dreams.
Ryoko
fell into a fitful slumber on her ledge. Her usual nightmares came.
Death, by her hand. Kagato,
cruel and merciless, smashing her
spirit at every chance, erasing her will to live. Controlling her.
She
suddenly was back in the cave. Cold, dark, pain - but only for
her. She projected her spirit outside to
see Tenchi crying. He had
lost someone he loved, and She longed to comfort him, but
couldn't...
She woke and sat up quickly, and almost fell. She
looked in the window and saw him dozing
there, and sighed. (I
can't let him sleep like that, he's got to go to bed). Risking a
violation of the rules,
she quickly teleported into and out of his
room to nudge him awake...
"Huh?" (Oh, I fell
asleep! Enough studying for tonight, I should lay down). Not knowing
what woke him, he
got ready for bed. Soon he was asleep again,
dreamless this time.
Ryoko decided to pay a visit to Washuu. Down in the lab, "Uh...Washuu."
"I'm in the middle of something right now...but if you think you could call me MOM!"
(Grrrrrrrrrr...well, maybe I could do that in this special circumstance)
"Ok, Mom..."
Washuu pops up instantly in front of Ryoko and grabs her in a great hug,"Awwww...how sweet!"
(Grrrrrrr)"Uh, can I ask you something?"
"Sure, anything for my darling little girl!"
(Grrrrrrrr...maybe I can't)
"Wash...I mean Mom, I need to talk to someone about Tenchi..."
"I won't help you find him, if that..."
"No, thats not
it. I have only ten days before he's gone for the whole summer"
As she says it, the feelings
manifest themselves on her face and
in her voice. "I want him to understand how I feel and why, I
don't want
him leaving for so long without that. Why does he
always push me away? What can I d..d.." She had to
stop
before she lost it, not being entirely comfortable with "mom"
yet, she had noboby else to turn to, but
she didn't want to
collapse into a crying mess in front of her either.
"It's okay, just have a seat, relax, I'll be right back." Washuu ran to the kitchen to get some tea.
"Okay, she's opening up to me a bit. Have to put on my best mother act. Should I stay as Little
Washuu or go to big? No, she's not used to that. Okay, I can't blow this."
After sitting with a cup of tea for a bit, Ryoko got a better hold of herself.
"Okay, you want to communicate with Tenchi, right?"
"Right, but I've been trying too..."
"No, not the right way. You need to communicate in more subtle ways than throwing yourself at him.
You see, that's not what most men respond to. You are sending all the wrong signals."
"Signals?"
"Right. You send men signals, then let them initiate contact."
"Like what?"
"Well, let me see...", as she
began digging through her extensive electronic library, and relating
this
and that to her daughter as she found the good bits.
Other
than the lack of fighting, everything was more normal the next day.
Sasami was up early to make
breakfast and fix Tenchi his lunch,
Mihoshi was off on an early patrol, and Aeka and Ryoko sat on
either
side of Tenchi during the meal. Ryoko was tired, she was up
all night with Washuu. (If knowledge is,
power, I have a hell of
an ally in ...Mom.)
"Tenchi?"
"Yes Aeka?"
"May I walk with you down to the school bus stop this morning to see you off?"
"Okay"
Ryoko (My, but she's being forward now! I wish I'd have asked him first! Well, I'd better
back off or we'd just fight and I'd be blamed
of course.) "See you after school Tenchi!" she
said in
the most cheerful voice she could muster. Before turning to leave,
she looked at
him long enough to establish direct eye contact -
then lowered her gaze and turned away.
Fast enough that Aeka
didn't notice, she wouldn't have anyway because she was too
shocked
that Ryoko wasn't instantly competing.
Tenchi and Aeka were both silent for a moment, a little unbalanced by Ryoko's leaving them together.
On the way to the bus stop.
"Tenchi, good luck on your tests today."
"Thank you Aeka, its just one actually, but a big one."
"Oh. Are you excited about your upcoming trip?"
"Oh yes, I'm
looking forward to all the new things I'll see. You know, besides
space, I've never been
outside of Japan. There are so many places
I've only read about or seen on TV and now I'm going to
visit some
of them."
"You will be careful and come back to us safely?"
"Of course, nothing to worry about."
"I'll miss you while you are gone!"
"I'll miss all of you too."
Aeka, looking slightly unhappy about way he said it,"Oh", then brightening,"I'll write to you."
"I'll write back and tell you of all that happens."
Aeka smiles
a little more now. "Have a good day at school!" She departs
as she hears the
bus approach.
Walking back up the path she
was lost in her own thoughts
(What is Ryoko up to? She gave in too
easily. I'l find out what her
little game is soon enough. Oh, how
I'll miss Tenchi! The whole summer!
What will I do in the
meantime?)
While Aeka walked back up the path, Ryoko was
wondering how she would spend the summer.
She saw Sasami cleaning
up, without her sisters help. (Maybe I can put that old plan on
mine
back into action) "Sasami, let me help you there."
The princess with the sweet disposition smiled and thanked her.
"You know Sasami," as they were nearly finished,"I would love to learn to cook like you do.
Since Tenchi will be gone all summer, maybe I could help you as you teach me?"
Sasami,
hesitantly answered, remembering her solo past attempts."Sure
Ryoko, it would
be nice to have your company in the
kitchen."
Ryoko was putting her mind into combat mode.
She knew that wars were fought not just by
the warriors. There
were Generals putting together stragety, spies getting information on
the
enemy, technicians keeping the equipment in shape. She was
going to have to be all of these
now. She would have all summer to
dedicate herself to winning this war. (I'm not changing
myself,
just my tactics. Once he is mine, he won't mind my advances anymore!
I'll have to
have another all nighter with ...Mom.) Since she
had been up all night, she phased up to
her favorite beam for a
nap.
Washuu was happy. Last night was a step in the right
direction. Bonding with her daughter
again would take time, and
helping her with her problems was one way of starting. (I will
respect
Yosho and obey the orders he gave, but I'll help my
daughter any way I can.) She sat down and,
experiments forgotten
for a while, she continued work on her newest project, Ryoko.
A
tinkling of noise awoke her, Sasami in the kitchen. With a yawn and a
great feline stretch, she
floated down off the beam into the
kitchen.
"Hi Sasami, where do I start?"
"Oh, Ryoko! First we get out all the ingredients..."
Lunch
was another less than normal affair. Mihoshi was out on a patrol.
Ryoko sat next to Washuu, both eating
quietly. Nobody knew they
were having a silent conversation. Putting ideas and plans past one
another. (You
know, Ryoko, you have to learn patience. These
things take time. Great idea, learning to cook if you can pull
that
off. Aeka tried and gave up.)(Yeah, but are you sure this stuff will
work? I couldn't tell if he reacted positively
or not to my
"signal.")(Remember what we talked about. If you stick to
the plan she will seem the aggressor, even
though what you will be
doing is more aggressive. He has alot to think about with his
upcoming trip. If you back
off from him you are just doing as
Yosho asked, but maybe he will miss the attention, hmm? Help him to
bring
out any feelings he has inside.)(But what if he chooses
Aeka?)(Then you must accept his decision.) What
Washuu wanted
to tell her, but felt like she couldn't until she trusted her more,
was that you couldn't make Tenchi
choose. But you could stop
climbing all over him, give him a chance to breathe, stop the
fighting, remove the
pressure, and he would learn sooner who he
loved as a friend, and which as a girlfriend.
After lunch, Aeka was getting ready to hang clothes out to dry,
"Can I give you a hand there?"
"Ryoko...yes, thank you."
Ryoko picked up one of the clothes baskets and walked with the
princess out to the
clotheslines. (What is she up to now?) They
worked together a while in silence, "Could you pass me some
more
clothes pins Aeka?","Yes, here." Aeka was
suspicious as always. Still, Ryoko and her had been through
much
together. Even though she had wanted to kill the space pirate
at one time, now she just wanted her out of the way.
(When Tenchi
is finally mine, and we stop fighting, we'll probably become really
good friends. I know that I get so
mad at her, but it is mostly
jealousy. All the reasons I really hated her before, were not really
her fault. But she
will not win Tenchi from me. In nine days he
couldn't possibly decide one way or the other. Let her try what
she
will. I will not worry about it.) "Thank you for your
help Ryoko. Tenchi will be home soon, would you like to go
with me
to meet him?","Sure, okay." (That should give her
something to think about.)
Ryoko was off balance. She didn't
expect this. (Oh, well go with it.) They walked down the path to the
bus stop,
and waited just out of sight along the path. Tenchi
didn't need the questioning from his schoolmates he would
get if
seen being met everyday by exotic looking women. Aeka unconsciously
began adjusting her robes and
straightening her hair. Ryoko
noticed this and smiled. (Signals Princess, but unseen by him) Soon
they heard
the bus stop, then pull away. As Tenchi came across
them he looked at Aeka and they shared a smile. Ryoko
began her
preening now, running her hands through her hair, then stood alert.
Tenchi looked at her then, she met
his eyes, then looked downward
and said,"How did the tests go today Tenchi."
Tenchi
looked at her, curiously. She was acting differently. Not attacking
him. And they were both there - not
fighting. (I like this. I
could get used to this. But I'll be leaving soon...) That was
it, he thought. They
are acting like this because of the trip and
the rules. "Great Ryoko, today was my foreign language final.
I
seemed to do really well in class, I enjoyed it. I guess that
made it easy."
"Maybe you will get to put that skill to use on your trip Tenchi." Aeka said.
"I had not though of that. Yes I hope so."
Ryoko stayed alert,
tilting her head to one side as she listened to Tenchi. "So what
subject do you have to
test in tomorrow?"
"I have two, Math and History"
Ryoko met his eyes again, holding his gaze a little bit longer this time before looking down.
"I know you will do just fine."
"Thanks Ryoko, lets get to the house. I have to do some studying before I meet Grandfather for training."
They all walked up the path together.
Tenchi flanked by the two girls. Arm in arm. (Most guys would kill
to
be in my shoes now, little do they know how complicated it would be.)
He contemplated the two of
them. His wild one and the demure
proper princess. He remembered his Grandfathers words, about
weighing
and measuring. It wasn't a calculation, it was a feeling. How did he
feel? (Pretty good, right
about now!) He thought ahead to the
future,(one will be hurt, I know. I care so much for them both.
They
must know that no matter what.) Another feeling, one he couldn't
identify immediately. Confidence?
Around these two? When did that
happen. Self assuredness. (Hmm, I could get used to this too.)
Back
at the house he immersed himself in study. Math was sets of rules.
History was remembering past
events and learning how they shaped
the future and present. Math had rules that couldn't be broken,
and
History was full of broken rules. He found his thoughts returning to
the girls. How Ryoko had
looked at him. Looked into his eyes. The
two of them not fighting. Rules, yes. And their History
together.
The rules would be broken soon.
Oh,
Great Spirit, Grant that I may not criticize my neighbor, until
I
have walked a mile in his moccasins.
-American Indian
Prayer
The Last Days of School
Ryoko
had another all nighter with Washuu. They had much to talk about.
"You just stick to the plan
Ryoko, you are doing just fine."
Ryoko wasn't as confident. "Are you sure? I don't really see too
much
happening?" Washuu reassured her daughter,"You
won't see it all happen at once. Does a flower
spring out of the
ground in full bloom the first day? Well, if it had a particular
genetic splice in it...
well forget that. Just trust me."
Ryoko still had difficulty with that. She had opened up a little
to
Washuu, but she couldn't keep the incident out of her mind
where she had been restrained in the
lab. In the dark, alone.
Washuu could sense this in her daughters thoughts. It had been a
necessary
experiment, to test the effects of Zero's assimilation.
Of course, the little mean streak she had gave
her a little fun
from it. Sensing this distrust now hurt a little bit, hell - it hurt
alot. Washuu was having
genuine feelings of guilt. She shoved
these aside, (I will make up for it, I will make it up to
her.)
"Okay, now I want to prepare a little something.
It's an idea I've been toying with." Ryoko got nervous
all of
a sudden. Washuu sensing this was quick to reassure,"Its okay,
it will only take a minute."
Ryoko hesitantly agreed.
Washuu placed a metal band around her head attached to a machine.
She
operated her holo laptop for a moment, took a look at her daughter,
and pressed a button.
"Thats all! Here we go." She
lifted the band off Ryokos head. "Thats it?" "Yep.
Okay, I looked
around and found a little something for you."
She gave Ryoko something gift wrapped. She took
it with a little
apprehension. "It's okay, nothing mechanical, biological,
chemical or electronic."
She opened it, to find a book. A
frown clouded her face, her eyes almost glowed as her
body
tensed,"Cooking for Dummies! How could you!" She
saw Washuu cringe, and the look on her
face calmed her slightly.
Washuu explained quickly,"It's not like that - it is a popular
series of
books for beginners. I wasn't insulting you, it's just a
really good way to start." Ryoko calmed
down. "If Aeka
saw me reading this book, I'd never hear the end of it." "Learn
how to cook, and
what can she say? Maybe you could give her the
book when you are done with it." At this,
Ryoko smirked, then
smiled and gave a hearty laugh. "No, I'll hold onto this. I need
all the help
I can get." She sat on one of the couches in a
corner and began thumbing through the book.
(This isn't so
bad, this doesn't seem so hard.) It was like having a great ancient
mystery revealed
to her. She couldn't but the book down.
Eventually, she nodded off on the couch, book open across
her
chest. Wahsuu found her like this. She looked down on her daughter.
Sleeping in the lab. (How
long has it been?) The diminutive
scientist changed into her adult form, and the tears began.
Tenchi
woke to the sound of his alarm. He had a great nights sleep, and
sprang out of bed energized.
He quickly got ready for school,
looking forward to another conflict free breakfast. As he
walked
downstairs, he saw Ryoko helping Sasami set out breakfast.
He got a little nervous at this, as he
remembered Ryokos past
attempts at cooking. She turned and saw him on the stairs. She
made
eye contact, and put on a most dazzling smile. He returned
her gaze and smile. (This new found
feeling of confidence again,
and she isn't smothering me either. She's actually being very
pleasant.)
She turned back to her work, ending the moment. She
felt all warm inside, and almost dropped a
dish, but held firm and
continued on. (This might just work.)
Aeka asked to walk him to the bus again, and Tenchi agreed. "Are you ready for today's tests Tenchi?"
"I think so, I've had lots of time to
prepare with no distractions. I really appeciate all the support you
have
given."
Aeka smiled and blushed slightly. Then a
thought popped into her head. "Thank you Tenchi. To be
fair...
Ryoko has been behaving herself as well." It wasn't
easy to say. But it was the truth, and Aeka appreciated
the peace
as well.
"It's really great to see you two getting along.
It will make it harder to leave when the time comes. Maybe
while
I'm gone, you and Ryoko can keep up the truce, become better
friends..."
"Perhaps, Tenchi."
"See you tonight Aeka!", and he ran to the sound of the approaching bus.
Tenchi was lost in thought on the bus ride. (Aeka is so
understanding, so easy to get along with. She is
gracious enough
to compliment her rival. She can be pretty mean to Ryoko at times,
but that only stems
from jealousy now. She helped me save Ryoko
before, from Kagato and Dr. Clay. She will be a great
Empress
someday. Ryoko on the other hand is an enigma. Her behavior can be so
erratic, I wish I could
understand her like I do Aeka.)
Washuu
worked on her project as the day passed. She wasn't sure it it would
be used, but she wanted it
ready just in case.
After her
post breakfast nap, Ryoko helped Sasami start lunch. She tried some
of the things she read about
in the book, and Sasami gave her some
pointers. "Here Ryoko, chop these up in smaller pieces, it lets
more
of the flavor out, okay, can you stir this for me, just
enough to keep it from bubbling over." One habit Ryoko
was
developing in the kitchen was snacking on some of the ingredients.
"Oh Ryoko, now I need to get some
more of those..." But
it was her first steps, she began learning.
Yosho joined them
for lunch. When it was over he spoke to Ryoko. "If you have
time, would you accompany
me to the shrine?"
"um, yes ... sir."
They ascended the steps in silence. Ryoko
considered the man next to her. (So much history we have
together.
So much unresolved. What was done, what I was punished with, what I
was spared from.)
She could only be nervous. They never really
talked. Then again, he didn't talk much anyway.
At the shrine.
"Ryoko, Tenchi will be leaving soon. I need to ask a favor of you."
"Um..."
"I am
used to training daily with Tenchi. With him gone, I need someone to
spar with in order to maintain
my skills. "
"Uh...well, you see, I, uh, well"
"A simple yes or no will suffice."
Ryoko didn't know what to say. The last time
the two of them fought, well, maybe the memories of what
happened
would be too much.
"Uh, sir...could I have time to think about this?"
"Of course, you have until Tenchi leaves."
"Thank you, sir."
She turned to leave...
"and Ryoko, whatever you decide, I will accept any answer."
"Yes sir."
She phased quickly away.
Aeka, was out sweeping the deck of the
house, sometimes looking out to where her ship, Ryu-oh, was
growing.
Already it had grown past being a sapling. In another
year or less it would be ready to go. She began to consider
the
future. (Some day, I have to go back. With or without him.) She
didn't want to deal with it. She put on a big
act with Ryoko,
saying that it would be impossible for him to choose the Space Pirate
over her, but her actions
undermined her confident words. She had
doubts. If for no other reason than the fact he hadn't decided
already.
(Oh, what does he see in her? How long must this go on?
I, a Princess, with suitors from across the Galaxy
who would kill
and die for my hand in marriage, for my status. And I love this
humble young man!) She would
wait for that decision, no matter
what her Father pulled, no matter how infuriated she got over Ryoko's
actions.
Maybe she would lose patience and just leave. (But no,
Ryoko has more patience than anyone else realizes.
And
Tenchi...he would go after her. Would he go after me if I did the
same?) She wanted him to rule beside
her. She knew he had a good,
fair heart, and would be an excellent Emperor. She thought of her
little sister's
future too. As much as she had been assured by
Tsunami of how they would merge as Sasami matured, she
hated the
anguish it caused Sasami to think she would disappear. She would
definitely return to Jurai someday.
It was her destiny. As much as
the little girl loved it here, Tsunami would know she had to return.
It was such
a burden to bear, all the responsibility, the destiny
of her sister. But it would be bearable with him at her side.
Mihoshi
returned from her long patrol. It was uneventful as usual, way out in
the backwaters of space. She
was having some problems with her
ship again. It just wasn't running right. At least she was having
better
luck with her landings lately. She walked through the
house, pausing at the kitchen to see Ryoko in a subdued
mood
helping an enthusiastic Sasami - playing the role of chef-sensei -
prepare dinner. "Hi Sasami! Have you
seen Washuu?"
"She's probably in her lab."
Washuu was passed out from working
non-stop since Ryoko opened up to her. She had finished her
little
device however. Mihoshi walked about in the lab, calling
out her name and searching, but no luck. A nuclear
blast couldn't
have brought Washuu from her deep slumber.
Mihoshi saw something on a workbench that caught her eye.
"Oh wow! Look at these cool sunglasses!"
She saw a small vanity nearby and sat in front of it to see how they would look on her. She placed the glasses
on and...
One
word doesn't even come close to describing it. Horror, Atrocity,
Holocaust, Armageddon, all rolled into one.
Planet after planet,
civilization after civilization. And the feelings, they were the
worst. Anguish, Suffering, Pain,
Despair, Hopelessness. Fear. Over
it all a spectre. An evil presense, in her her, invading her very
soul.
Mihoshi couldn't take it anymore and her mental self defense
kicked in...she fainted. As she fell, the "sunglasses"
were
knocked off.
"Thanks for your help again Ryoko, you're doing great."
This got a small smile from the older woman.
"Could you go find everyone and let them know dinner is almost ready."
Ryoko phased about, letting
everyone know. Funny, she though, I was so distracted by my work and
my thoughts
I forgot to meet Tenchi. A twinge of jealousy went
through her as she saw Aeka and Tenchi walking together up the
path.
They were just chatting away, laughing it up. Ryoko's heart sank.
(This plan won't work. I'm hopeless.)
Then Tenchi looked up
and saw her. He looked into her eyes, and smiled warmly. He began to
walk in her direction.
She couldn't break eye contact. She felt
butterflies in her stomach (Snap out of it, don't just stare like a
dummy.)
"Dinners almost ready!" And she phased away.
Tenchi stood there as she disappeared. He
felt...disappointed? (I thought she would have joined us and walked
the
rest of the way with us?)
Ryoko sat under Funaho,
pulling herself together. She had her emotions pulled in too many
ways too quickly. The
assimilation with Zero changed her in ways
she wasn't fully used to yet. She then heard a familiar comforting
sound?
"Miya!" Her best friend, and for a while, her only friend, jumped onto her lap. She cuddled Ryo-Ohki in her arms.
"You can always make me feel better."
At
dinner Mihoshi, Washuu, and Ryoko were conspicuously absent. As
Sasami brought out the dishes, she looked
about the table and
asked if anyone had seen them.
Aeka said,"Well, I saw Mihoshi come in, and her ship is still out there. She never misses a meal when she is here."
She got up to look about. Tenchi joined the search. He made his way to Washuu's lab.
"Washuu!" He called out and searched, until he found Mihoshi.
The
beautiful sweet blonde, who he considered a sister, lay on her back,
a look of pure pain on her face, out cold.
He gathered her up in
his arms and started yelling for Washuu, hollering for help.
Washuu
pulled herself up groggily. (What's all the racket?) She followed the
sound of the shouting. Then, a shadow
of dread passed through her.
She found Tenchi running through the lab, calling out for help,
cradling Mihoshi in her
arms. (Oh, no. It would have been her.)
"Tenchi! Tenchi! Bring her here!" With relief he ran to
Washuu, and set
Mihoshi on what appeared to be a hospital bed.
Washuu produced her holotop and began typing furiously, as bits
of
machinery surrounded Mihoshi. She ran several scans. "Tenchi,
when you found her, what did you see?" "Well,
she was on
the floor, passed out." "Was she wearing anything unusual,
like a pair of sunglasses?" "Not that I could
see."
"Show me where!" Tenchi led her to the vanity, and she
spotted the 'glasses' and showed them to Tenchi.
"Was she
wearing these when you found her?" "No, she was just on the
floor." Washuu returned to her equipment,
and ran a few
scans. "Well, she was wearing them",she ran a few scans,
then slightly relaxed and sighed."She
passed out and they
fell off before real damage could be done. She will need caring and
comfort for a few days."
"What happened to her?"
"These!" Washuu held up the glasses to punctuate her
speech. "I should have locked
them up in case someone came
around." "What are they, and what happened to Mihoshi?"
Tenchi was visibly
upset. Next to Sasami, Mihoshi was the sweetest
of the bunch, and he hated the though of anything happening
to
her. Washuu debated telling him what the device did, because she
might have to explain why she made it.
"Are you sure
she'll be okay?" Washuu ran a few more scans to double check.
"Yes Tenchi, she may have a
few nightmares, but she'll be
fine." (I have to tell him, he'll find out eventually.) "What
happened to her?"
"Tenchi, these," she help up
the glasses,"are a simple VR device. Well, maybe not simple in
the sense that
you are used to..." "Wait Washuu, what is
VR?" "Virtual Reality. Your scientists are playing with
some crude
versions of it I think. Very primitive. They allow you
to see a computer generated visual reality...""Kind of
like
a game, right?" "In a way, but these are different.
These allow you to feel, and not just your senses. You can
feel
the emotions, the pain. Basically they allow you to live someones
memories. I was going to test them,
but I had to get some rest. I
had them turned up to a level I would have been able to handle, but
not her."
Tenchi thought about this awhile. "So she relived some memories. Whose?"
Washuu paused. (What do I tell him, how do I explain?)
"Ryoko."
"Why would you make something to allow someone to relive her memories?"
"Well," (here comes a whale of a
lie),"I wanted to live through what she did, since I missed out
on so much
of her life. Being a mother and all, I though reliving
her memories would help to get us closer. I thought I
could make
another one so she could experience some of my life as well."
She waited, to see if he bought
into it.
Tenchi considered
it. (Maybe I would finally be able to understand her if I tried
that.) "Washuu, can you turn
down the intensity so I could
get a glimpse."
(He's playing right into my hands.) "No,
no way. I need to run some more tests. Besides, I made this for
me,
it's a mother daughter thing, understand?"
As much as he
wanted to see, the old curiousity that set Ryoko free in the first
place was very strong, he
glanced at Mihoshi and had second
thoughts. "Okay, professor. When will Mihoshi be okay, what can
we do? "
"She'll probably be out for the night. I'll
stay up with her, and try to keep her brain waves mellow to keep
the
nightmares to a minimum."
"I'll bring you some food then." And he left the lab.
Washuu mentally called out to her daughter,"Ryoko, are you okay."
"Yes, I'm fine. I just want to be alone for a bit."
Tenchi went to see Sasami and asked her to help him put a plate together for Washuu.
"Is everything alright? Where are Mihoshi and Ryoko?"
"Well, Mihoshi had a little accident in the lab."
"Oh," a worried look of deep concern for her friend,"is she alright."
Tenchi downplayed it a bit,"Oh yes, she'll be just fine. You know how Mihoshi is in that lab."
Sasami relaxed and put two plates together, one for Mihoshi.
Tenchi took them down to the lab and gave the one plate to Washuu.
"Do you know where Ryoko is?"
Washuu thought for a second. Concentrating. "She is out by Funaho."
"Thank you, little Washuu."
As he left the little genius smiled.
Tenchi found Ryoko, resting on a tree branch, deep in thought, staring out over the water.
"Hey, Ryoko!"
She looked down and her heart leapt. He came looking for me!
"I brought you some dinner, I hope you like it!"
He sat down on a big rock, and Ryoko phased
down to him. She accepted the plate gratefully.
She wasn't really
that hungry, having eaten a bit during the preparation of the food,
and with her
nerves being a little bit bad.
"Thank you." She sat there next to him, not looking at him directly, and began picking at the food.
(How horrible has her life
really been? Look what her memories did to poor Mihoshi!)
"So
how was your day Ryoko?" He could sense she wasn't feeling well.
What was wrong?
(I want to fall into his arms and cry my eyes
out, but he'll only push me away.)"Well, I've been
hanging
out with Washuu and Sasami, helping with the cooking."
"You
helped cook?" He saw a chance to reassure her. "Let me
see." He took the chopsticks
from her and ate a little bit.
"This is good." She looked at him. He sat there chewing,
looking
at her with that smile of his. She looked deep into his
eyes, saw the comfort in them. The
floodgates began to
open.
Tenchi saw her start to...cry? He set the plate down and faced her directly. She started sobbing.
(I can't
help it, I feel so weak.) The news of Tenchi going away, the thought
of him leaving her not just
for the summer, the pressure of
Yosho's request, the caring he was showing her now. She
really
started losing it. Damn that Zero, why did she have to make
me like this.
(Oh, I can't stand to see her hurting like this,
what can I do?) He reached for her, and she fell into his
arms,
pressing her face between his shoulder and chest, crying her eyes
out. Her body racked with
sobs. He found himself speaking softly
to her, murmuring comforts to her. "It's okay...it's
alright...I'm
here for you...I've got you..."
He
felt like a jerk. (This is all my fault. How bad must I make her
feel, this tough as nails Space Pirate,
to bawl like a baby?) He
hugged her and rocked her, softly speaking comforts, until the
sobbing died
down. After a while, she pulled away and started to
say, "Oh, I'm making a fool of myself..."
"No Ryoko, I'm sorry, it's all my fault."
"Tenchi, no, you have no blame, all you do is take care of me, all of us, even though I don't deserve..."
"Don't say that Ryoko.
You deserve a better live than you've had. I'm sorry I couldn't have
been there to
help you sooner, comfort you sooner..."
"Oh Tenchi..."
She was crying again, he held her for the
duration, gently stroking her hair and back. She wanted this, but
not
in sadness and sympathy, but in love. The comfort for now was
enough.
When her crying had died down a bit,"C'mon Ryoko, let's go back. They willl be sending a search party soon."
He took her hand, and led her back to the house.
Aeka was fit to
be tied. Tenchi and Ryoko had been gone for quite some time, and it
was getting dark out.
But, she stayed put. She would obey her
brothers wishes. Going out and finding them together would
ultimately
lead to a fight. Then she relaxed. (My Tenchi will come back to me
eventually) she thought
as she regained her confidence.
Ryoko
and Tenchi stopped outside the door. He faced her and took out his
handkerchief drying her eyes.
She looked at him, gratefully. "I
don't want them seeing me like this." He gave her a quick hug.
"Just go
and phase on in somewhere. I'll see you later."
She smiled and disappeared.
Tenchi walked inside to see a concerned Aeka. "Is everything alright Tenchi?"
Placing
his hand behind his neck and smiling,"Sure Aeka, everything is
just fine. Well, I have to find
Grandpa!" Yosho was in the
livingroom with Noboyuki, sharing some sake.
"Tenchi, you missed practice today." "Hello son, everything alright?"
"Yes Grandpa, I'll make it up to you. Everythings fine Dad!"
"Alright, we'll train twice as long tomorrow, I want to work the bugs out of a couple of your techniques."
For once, Tenchi looked forward to it, self
assurance again. His increasing mastery of the martial arts
was
carrying over into other parts of his life as well he was just
beginning to realize.
He went down to the lab to check on Mihoshi. When he got down there, Washuu smiled at him warmly.
"How is she?" Washuu sighed,"Well she's past the worst of it. Tenchi..."
"Yes?"
"I will consider your request, about the memories."
Tenchi though it over. "Thank you, little Washuu."
Out of the lab, into the kitchen. Sasami was just finishing clean up. "Hi Sasami!"
A look of concern,"How are Mihoshi and Ryoko?"
"Oh they are okay. I hear you are quite a teacher. Ryoko is actually learning to cook from you, huh?"
Sasami
smiled and blushed slightly, with eyes downcast,"Yes Tenchi, she
is starting to learn a little,
if only she'd stop eating the
ingredients." She finished with a giggle.
(That sure sounds like Ryoko) Tenchi joined her in a little laugh.
He found Aeka watching TV alone. He sat down next to her.
"Hello, Tenchi. How is Mihoshi?"
"She will be okay. That lab and Mihoshi do not mix well."
He earned a smile from Aeka for that.
"Well, I have some studying to do before I go to sleep. Goodnight Aeka."
"Sleep well, Lord Tenchi."
He would never get used to being called that, he
thought. Back in his room - (Just a few more
finals, then the
school picnic. And I'll be away all summer.) All those unresolved
issues will
be there when he got back. It would be a vacation.
He'd be training too hard to worry about
much else he thought.
(Time to hit the books.)
Ryoko lay on the roof and stared up
at the stars. (He held me, he comforted me, he cares about
me,
he's there for me.) An unusually bright shooting star passed
overhead, leaving a bright trail.
(Ryo-Ohki, is it?) (Miya -
Translation - no just a meteorite) Feeling drained from crying, but
buoyed
by the comfort and caring Tenchi gave her, she fell asleep,
with the stars as her nightlight.
Mihoshi opened her eyes. She
felt very tired and had a splitting headache. "ohhh...my head."
Washuu
sat up, as she had dozed off during her all night vigil.
"How do you feel Mihoshi?" "Oh, awful. What am
I
doing here. The last thing I remember is coming into the lab and..."
Her eyes went wide, as she
remembered the feelings of what
happened. An uncharacteristically sober and serious Mihoshi
continued,
"What happened to me Washuu?" The little
redhead explained, "You put on what looked like
sunglasses,"
The blonde nodded,"They were actually a
virtual reality device that allows you to relive someones
past
experiences. I think you managed to make it through about
fifty years worth before you passed out."
"Who...whose
life was I reliving." (Mihoshi grasped the concept immediately?)
Washuu frowned,
usually Mihoshi required much more explaining.
"Ryoko's, you experienced what it was like for her
while
Kagato was in control of her." Mihoshi's expression was
unreadable. For a bit she looked angry.
Then a look of resolution
and determination set on her face. "I have to see Ryoko..."
Wait Mihoshi, you
must rest..." In her new serious demeanor
again, "No, I have to see her now." With that she got up
and
left the lab, leaving Washuu alone with a concerned
expression.
Breakfast had come and gone. Ryoko had just finished with clean up when she almost ran into Mihoshi.
"Ryoko..." Ryoko looked at Mihoshi (What
is that look about?) "Lets go somewhere, I want to talk to
you
about something." Something about the look on her face stopped
any thoughts of saying no. "Okay."
They went outside and walked down to Funaho. "Ryoko, something happened to me last night. I, well..."
She explained Washuu's little device.
She started talking about some of the details of what she saw,
what
she felt. "Ryoko, I had no idea. It was so horrible,
I..." Both women looked at each other, and the old
Mihoshi
surfaced again,"Oh, I'm so sorry!!!!" She grabbed Ryoko
into a big hug and started crying. For
the second time in as many
days, Ryoko broke down too. Understanding. Someone really understood
her.
It wasn't real, what Mihoshi had gone through, but it
felt real all the same. They shared that experience
together. For
the first time, she felt close to someone besides Tenchi. After a
while both women calmed
down enough to talk about it for a while.
The more they talked, the more Mihoshi began to return to normal.
One
thing that wouldn't change though. The two women shared a common bond
now, and would forever be
closer friends because of it.
Babe I'm gonna leave you
-Led Zeppelin
Babe, baby,
baby, I'm Gonna Leave You.
I said baby, you know I'm gonna leave
you.
I'll leave you when the summertime,
Leave you when the
summer comes a-rollin'
Leave you when the summer comes
along.
Baby, baby, I don't wanna leave you,
I ain't jokin'
woman, I got to ramble.
Oh, yeah, baby, baby, I believin',
We
really got to ramble.
I can hear it callin' me the way it used to
do,
I can hear it callin' me back home!
Babe...I'm gonna
leave you
Oh, baby, you know, I've really got to leave you
Oh I
can hear it callin 'me
I said don't you hear it callin' me the way
it used to do?
Ohhh
I know, I know
I know I never
never never gonna leave your babe
But I got to go away from this
place,
I've got to quit you, yeah
Ooh, baby...
Baby, ooh don't you hear it callin' me?
Woman, woman, I know, I know
It feels good to have you back again
And I know that
one day baby, it's really gonna grow, yes it is.
We gonna go
walkin' through the park every day.
Come what may, every day
Oooh,
mama baby
I'm gonna leave you--go away
It was really, really good.
You made me happy every single day.
But now!
I've got to go away!
Baby, baby, baby, baby
That's when it's callin' me
I said that's when it's
callin' me back home...
Chapter 3
In the next
few days, a new routine started to emerge. Ryoko helped Sasami
prepare all the meals. Since she snacked
during the preparation,
she behaved less like a glutton during the actual meals, since the
edge was taken off her hunger.
Mihoshi and Ryoko started watching
TV together, and generally hanging out together whenever she wasn't
on patrol. Aeka
began to notice this, and couldn't figure it
out.
Tenchi had finished all his finals. He did really well,
and at dinner he had to say something to everyone. He stood,"Hey,
I'd
just like to thank everyone for bearing with me during this last week
of school. I did really great on those tests, with
everything
being so pleasant around here I got alot of studying done."
The
mention of him going away put a slight cloud on the gathering, Aeka
attempted to lighten the mood. That is wonderful
Lord Tenchi, we
should celebrate."
Sasami brightened,"Oooh! A party! You deserve it Tenchi for doing well in school! It could be a going away party too!"
Aeka continued,"Yes, a happy time for you to remember us by while you are away!"
Mihoshi bubbled up,"A party! We can sing Karaoke!"
"And I'll get some sake!" Ryoko added.
"Really, Ryoko, can't you have a party without drinking?"
Ryoko flashed Aeka a dirty look, and was about to say something nasty when,
"Be nice to her Aeka! You aren't above drinking a little Sake now and then!"
Everyone stared shocked at Mihoshi, except Washuu. Where did that come from?
Sasami joined in on her,"You aren't supposed to start any trouble Aeka! No fighting!"
Even Tenchi had a look of disapproval on his face.
A now subdued Aeka,"I'm sorry...Ryoko."
"It's okay
princess," She almost added 'I know you can't help yourself' But
caught a warning thought
from Washuu.
They set about
planning for the party. Each figuring out how they could contribute.
Nobody noticed as
Washuu slipped away from the table. She had to
think about Mihoshi, and her change. Ryoko had
given her Hell
about taking her memories and making the device from them. After she
had calmed
down a little Washuu explained that she made it to help
Tenchi understand her better. "No way are
you putting that
thing on Him!" She had said. "It was enough that I had to
go through all that. I wouldn't
want anyone else to go through
what Mihoshi did, least of all Tenchi!" Maybe I'd better rethink
letting
Tenchi try it out. It might be better to have him talk to
Mihoshi about it. The four of them had kept the
details of
Mihoshi's 'lab accident' to themselves. It would be good therapy for
Mihoshi to talk about it
some more. (Mihoshi has changed. Maybe
only a little, but life experience does change us. It shapes
us
into who we are. I wonder?) Washuu retrieved the glasses. She went to
a part of the lab that she
used for taking breaks, and settled
down into a reclining chair. (Well, here goes. A taste of my
own
medicine so to speak.) She set the glasses to begin at the
time of Kagato taking over her daughter,
and turned the intensity
level all the way up. (Here we go!) She put them on...
Aeka
was beside herself with frustration. (She is making me look bad by
behaving herself these past
few days. And Tenchi is spending more
time with her that me! I have to get a hold of these feelings
of
jealousy. I must maintain my bearing. Is this part of her scheme? Is
she just being obedient for a
change?) She didn't know what to
think. Ryoko was cleaning in the kitchen with Sasami. Tenchi was
up
at the shrine with Yosho. Noboyuki was home early for a change,
relaxing in front of the TV along
with Mihoshi. She decided to
take a walk around the lake to think about things.
Up at the
shrine, Tenchi and Yosho were going through a series of Kata. He had
declared an end to
sparring sessions for the remaining time before
the trip. When finished they sat down for some tea.
"Tenchi, there's something I want you to do."
"Yes Grandpa?"
"I want you to return all Ryoko's gems to her."
Tenchi was wide eyed in amazement. Why? He didn't ask for an explaination, he got one anyway.
"While you are away, it would be better if the gems remained here. I want you to take Tenchi-Ken
with you. If anything happens while you are gone, I want Ryoko at full strength."
What he didn't add
was the fact that having Ryoko's gems nearby allowed his tree Funaho
to draw
power from them, to prevent his aging. Someday, Tenchi
would have to learn of the fact that his
Grandfather wasn't so
old. Maybe after he fully matured, and started noticing he wasn't
getting
any older either.
"Are you sure about this? I could just leave the sword..."
"No Tenchi, keep it
with you just in case. Don't worry about Ryoko. Before you leave,
make sure you
have a long talk with her."
"Well, okay. Goodnight Grandfather."
Tenchi got up to leave.
"And Tenchi...Have a talk with Aeka alone before you leave too."
"I will Grandfather."
Tenchi
was getting ready for bed when he heard a noise downstairs like
someone stumbling around. He
went to investigate, finding Washuu
at his fathers liquor cabinet, reaching for a bottle of Nikka
Whiskey
with shaking hands. She turned at his approach, and smiled
weakly."Sometimes the good old fashioned
remedies are the
best." He helped her into a chair, and he sat across from her.
"It was horrible Tenchi.
Worse than I had imagined. Mihoshi
drew an analogy for me after her experience. She had been through
a
class at the Police Academy they have for Women officers. It dealt
with helping victims of rape. It was
designed so officers could
have an understanding of the psychology of the victim, so they could
better
comfort them at the scene, make them more comfortable so
they could talk about it, to aid in the investigation.
She said
the feelings...were like that. I understand now what she meant.
The imprisonment part, that I
already knew about. But to be
controlled, abused..." She took a big slug of whiskey right
out of the bottle.
It looked funny, a little girl swigging booze.
"Long term abuse produces a certain psychology, a
certain
behaviour. It explains alot of why Ryoko acts the way she
does. I can get you some books if you want to
read up on
it..."
"I want to try it."
If Ryoko's request wasn't enough, her recent experience was. She wouldn't let him.
"No Tenchi. Ryoko doesn't want you to. She knows
what it did to Mihoshi. I suggested that
if I turn the intensity
down you might try it to understand her better. She is violently
opposed
to you going through that." Well, he knows now what
the original purpose was at least. If
not why I built the thing in
the first place.
"Why? I though she wanted me to know her better?"
"Not like that Tenchi, she doesn't want you to suffer like she did."
Tenchi thought for a little
while as Washuu knocked back a few more shots. "Alright. But
promise
me one thing Washuu. That you will keep that thing
available. I want to talk to Ryoko about this."
The alcohol started to influence the scientist,"Well on one condition."
"What would that be?"
"That you call me, Little WASHUU!!!!"
Tenchi smiled. "Okay, little Washuu. Let me help you up. You don't want to pass out up here."
"Oh Tenchi, you trying to take advantage of a drunk vulnerable lady?"
Tenchi laughed nervously at this, and helped her to the sleeping quarters in her lab.
As he took his leave from her she called after him,"Tenchi..."
"Yes Little Washuu?"
"She loves you. Did you know that?"
"Well, I'm sure that it's..."
"No, she really does."
With that thought, Tenchi headed out of
the lab, and up to bed.
Tomorrow was the school picnic. The last
day of school. Saying goodbye for the summer, signing
yearbooks,
everyone would be excited about summer vacation. ( And my trip begins
the following day.
A party tomorrow night too. I'll have such a
busy day tomorrow. I've had no time to think about my
feelings. Oh
well, I need my rest.) Tenchi drifted off to sleep. After a time, a
figure appeared in the
air above him. She couldn't keep away
anymore. His guardian angel. His friend. Ryoko.
She had been
behaving after all. What harm was there in it. A mischievous grin
crossed her face, back
into character again. She had a little plan
for tomorrow.
Tenchi woke up before his alarm went off,
feeling well rested. He got up and started getting dressed for
his
school picnic. More casual clothes than usual for the day. He went
downstairs for breakfast, the
smell of food making him all the
more hungry. Washuu wasn't there, (I guess she needed to sleep
in
after last night.) Sasami came out of the kitchen and sat to
eat. She had a bit of a concerned look.
"Anyone seen
Ryoko this morning? She has been helping me out in the kitchen every
morning until
today." Nobody had. Aeka was relieved to have a
breakfast with Tenchi free from Ryoko.
( I knew she couldn't
keep this up for long. That bottle of whiskey I saw out this morning
explains it,
she tied one on and is passed out somewhere. I will
just keep my comments to myself) Aeka thought.
After breakfast
she helped Sasami clean up instead of walking Tenchi to the bus. She
planned on asking
him to take a walk with him after school
today.
At the picnic, Tenchi sat mostly alone with his
thoughts. He wasn't one of the popular 'in crowd', but he
had a
couple friends. He was quiet, because most of the things he wanted to
talk about and had on his
mind just couldn't be discussed. He
could picture it now, What's up Tenchi? Oh nothing, just the
usual,
an alien robot that looked like one of my girlfriends tried
to kill me the other day Being quiet was probably
the only reason
he wasn't the most popular guy in school. He got up when he saw a
friend of his and took
out his yearbook, "Hey Amagasaki!"
"Tenchi, vacations finally about to begin! I bet you are looking
forward
to hanging out at the old shine all summer huh?" He
playfully elbowed Tenchi in the ribs. "Well actually, I
am
going traveling this summer." "Oh, where are you..."
His friend trailed off and looked over Tenchi's shoulder.
"Who's
that?" Tenchi followed his gaze. Walking across the school field
was a girl that they didn''t recognize.
All the guys stopped what
they were doing to follow her progress across the picnic, many
earning a dirty look
or slap from their suddenly ignored
girlfriends. She moved with a feline grace that fit her beautifully
sculpted
body. She was wearing a simple sundress with a floral
pattern, and wearing sunglasses. Her dark hair
fell about her
shoulders and framed her face. She walked to the tables where all the
food was set out, and
started loading her plate with a ridiculous
amount of food. "Wow, she's beautiful," said Amagasaki in a
sigh.
"I wonder if she is someones guest. Bet you wish
you knew her Tenchi." "Who wouldn't, here sign
my
yearbook!" "Okay, lets see. "To my friend
Tenchi, have a great summer, but stay away from the mummies
this
time, signed, Me!" "You are still the old clown aren't
you." The two friends sat down to eat, when
Amagasaki saw
another buddy and went to chase him down."See you later Tenchi!"
He didn't notice the
approach of the mystery woman. "Mind if
I join you?" Tenchi looked up to see the raven haired
beauty.
Taken aback for a moment he gestured to a spot next to
him with his hand, "Please." Now all eyes were
on
Tenchi, relief on some of the girls faces, jealousy and envy on some
of the guys. Tenchi hated attention.
(She's gorgeous, why is
she sitting next to me? What is this?) He watched her as she sat
down, transfixed.
She arranged her plate in front of her and
looked at him. She reached up and lowered her sunglasses a
little
revealing her eyes, golden, staring deeply into his.
Realization hit. "Ryoko! What are you doing here?
Your
hair!","Shhh Tenchi, don't worry, I promise to
behave." He was embarrassed that she had seen him looking
at
her like that. (It's funny, I never really looked at her purely as a
woman. I associate so many other things
with her that I just never
took a good look. She really is beautiful.) "I'm in disguise
Tenchi, I think my hair and
eye color might be a bit much for them
to handle around here." Tenchi laughed at that, and relaxed a
little.
"Okay fine. Just don't start any trouble. I don't want my school blown up again." Ryoko looked down at that,
"I
only wanted to spend some time with you away from home for a change."
They talked for a bit, Tenchi
telling the stories of different
classmates, pointing each one out as he told stories of the
happenings at school.
He had to admit to himself, he was glad she
was here. He was closer to her than anyone at school, and they
could
talk about anything together. Tenchi noticed that some people were
paying more attention to the two
of them than he would have liked.
"C'mon Ryoko, lets go for a walk." He beat a hasty exit.
They began a
walk around the outskirts of the school grounds. (I
guess now is as good a time as any),"Ryoko, when we
get back
to the house, I want to return the rest of your gems to you."
Ryoko reacted with an intake of
breath, eyes unreadable as she
faced him because of the sunglasses. "Tenchi, why?" "They
are yours
of course. You should have them." "Why now?"
"Well, I'm going away for the summer, and I'm taking my
sword
with me. With the stuff that happens around here you might need them
while I'm gone." She
didn't know what to think, then an awful
thought occured to her. (Is he giving them to me because he
thinks
they are what is keeping me here? Does he want me to leave)
It was terrible to contemplate. Tears, hidden
behind the glasses
(Damn that Zero making me all emotional), but not in hidden in her
voice. She had to
ask, "Tenchi, do you want me to...go?"
In a heartbeat, he saw her misunderstanding. He turned to
her,
placing his hands on her shoulders. "No way, Ryoko. I
want you to stay, as long as you want." He
reached over and
took off her glasses, seeing the hope and fear in her eyes. "I'll
be expecting you to be home
waiting for me when I return at the
end of summer." He put an edge of command in his voice, in a
joking sort
of way. She brightened, her face lighting up with her
natural beauty. Tenchi's heart skipped a beat, and gave
into
impulse, pulling her to him in an affectionate hug. A longer hug than
that reserved for family and friends,
by just a little. "C'mon,
I want to introduce you to some of my friends. Let's see, who will I
tell them you are?"
He cooked up a story about Ryoko
being a friend he had met during the last summer break, who goes to
school
in the next district over. Tenchi enjoyed the momentary
popularity, always pulling away before the questions
got too
difficult to answer. Ryoko was enjoying the whole thing, (This is
what it would be like to be Tenchi's
girlfriend at school.) She
sighed dreamily. At the end of the day, they made their goodbyes and
headed to
he busses. "Tenchi, can we keep this between us?"
Tenchi was feeling pretty good. She had behaved very
well. She
hadn't really broken any rules, and actually saved him soome time.
"Sure. In fact, I want to thank
you for going to the trouble
of coming out here. It would have been boring without you." He
was rewarded
with a beautiful smile. "No bother at all, my
Tenchi. Well, I better go back the way I came." With that,
she
rounded a corner and disappeared.
Back at at the house
Aeka had been fuming ever since she discovered Ryoko had been gone
all day. (What
kind of trouble was she getting Lord Tenchi into.
She has to be with him. Where else would she be. That
Demon woman
is up to no good, I''m sure of it.) She started down the path to the
bus stop to meet Tenchi,
fearing the worst.
Mihoshi sat up when she heard someone come in. She stared agape at Ryoko's hair. "What..."
Let's go to the baths Mihoshi, I'd enjoy
your company." With her friends invitation, the unusual
color
was soon forgotten. At the baths, Mihoshi helped Ryoko scrub the
coloration and chemicals
out of Ryoko's hair, who dismissed it as
just trying a new style. They relaxed later in the hot
water,
discussing police and pirate procedures and tactics.
Mihoshi found this fascinating, and figured
she could use this
information in the future. Ryoko of course, had no intention of ever
using this
knowledge again.
"So how was the school picnic Tenchi?"
"It was very nice. I had a pleasant day today."
"Anything unusual happen?" She asked in a nonchalant way.
Tenchi hid his nervousness at this question. "No Aeka, why would there be."
"Oh, no reason, Lord Tenchi."
(Man, is she ever suspicious of Ryoko. Well, I guess she has good reason to be.)
Tenchi couldn't suppress a laugh.
"What is it, why did you laugh?"
"Oh, just thinking about some of my yearbook signatures."
They took a seat and he went though the book
with her, page by page. Explaining who was who and
what was what.
(Grandfather wanted me to talk to her before I left, but about what?
Maybe just to
talk to her as I am now - is that what he meant?)
After a time they went to the house. Tenchi went
up to the shrine
for his last practice, and Aeka went to take a bath before getting
ready for the party
that night.
She entered the baths to
find Ryoko and Mihoshi there, chatting away. (There they are, the odd
couple)
She began to think of the two that way, the unlikely pair.
She dared not voice that little nickname until
Tenchi was safely
away on his trip. "Hi Aeka!" said the ever happy
blonde,"you excited about the party
tonight?" "Yes
Mihoshi, Sasami and I have been busy all day in preparation." "I
know, I saw the decorations
when I got back from patrol, you both
did a nice job, it's beautiful." Ryoko remained silent
throughout. She
wanted to avoid answering any questions. Not a
chance. "So Ryoko, what did you do all day?"
Cornered,
think fast! "I spent a little time with Mom"
(Cover for me please!)(You got it little Ryoko.)"You know,
we
have a lot of catching up to do." Aeka seemed satisfied
with this answer. Ryoko got up and decided to
go see Tenchi. He
would be training now.
She phased to the top of the steps.
Tenchi was doing some unusual sword work. Since they weren't
sparring,
Yosho had given him a katana to practice with. He wove
an unusual pattern that seemed to blend into the
alternating shade
and sunlight produced by the overhead branches. It was almost
hypnotic, watching the
blade flash, then seemingly disappear and
reappear. She saw the focus and determination in his
features.
Watching him like this, made her feel a little
funny. He looked so good to her when he was serious about
something.
He was finished all of a sudden. He quickly sheathed his blade with
an elegant practiced
movement, when he noticed Ryoko. He smiled at
her. "Ryoko, what's up?" She snapped out of it. "Just
came
up to see what you were doing." Yosho appeared. "Tenchi,
this would probably be a good time for
it." "Right. Come
inside please, Ryoko." He took her hand and led her into the
shrine. "I'm giving them
back to you now." It was almost
ceremonial. Tenchi had her sit across from him, with Yosho in
attendence
in the front of the small dojo inside the shrine. He
produced Tenchi-Ken. He nodded to his Grandfather,
who nodded
back. With that he pointed the hilt towards Ryoko, bowed his head and
closed his eyes.
The two gems started to glow brightly, and
disappeared. They appeared again on Ryoko, one at her other
wrist,
and her neck. The power she felt then, coursing through her. Her
pulse quickened. It was intoxicating
Not for 700 years had she
felt so...complete. Then memories began to flood her mind. She
quickly relived
the chase across the galaxy from Jurai to Earth,
the sword in her throat, then...nothing." She had her
eyes
squeezed tightly shut, and was shaking. Tenchi looked up,
worry and concern writ clear across his face.
He started to
get up to go to her when a hand gesture from Yosho bade him to hold.
In time, her shaking
ceased. She looked up at Tenchi, and saw his
concern. "It's alright, I'm fine." He visibly relaxed.
Then
she looked at Yosho. "My answer is yes. Honorable
Grandfather." (What would be an appropriate exit?)
She stood,
bowed, and phased downward through the floor. Tenchi looked at his
Grandfather questioningly.
"It's alright Tenchi. You can
trust her. I do." It still didn't answer his question. (Grandpa,
cryptic as usual,
and now Ryoko too?) "I believe we have a
party to go to, right Tenchi?" They got up and headed
home.
Ryoko now had three things to occupy her time over the
summer. Cooking, fighting, and her new friendship
with Mihoshi.
She thought about playing around with some of her powers,
experimenting. (No, better wait
and talk to Washuu first.) Getting
back her gems gave her some of the old fire back that she felt had
been
diminished when merging with Zero. (I will do my best to
behave, for Tenchi.) She thought about the way
he had looked at
her today. He seemed a little different lately, and acted a little
different towards her. Of
course, she had been acting more
restrained. He did seem more confident though. It made him all
the
more attractive to her.
Tenchi was more confident, for
more reasons than one. Things seemed more peaceful, he had
mastered
the sword, he did great on his finals, and the way he
felt at the picnic. The way everyone acted towards
him with Ryoko
at his side, (Well, that was an ego booster, I think I'm letting too
much go to my head.)
But he couldn't help but feel very secure.
Well, he would have the attentions of several beautiful
women
tonight. For once, he looked forward to it.
The party
was wonderful. Better than he expected. With his Father and
Grandfathers permission he even
had some sake. It produced a nice
warm feeling inside. It also boosted his confidence a bit more,
and
loosened his inhibitions a bit. He danced with the girls, and
even sang some karaoke. Ryoko was a bit
in the cups herself. She
got the nerve to ask Tenchi to sing a duet with her. Feeling loose,
he agreed:
Now I've had the time of my life
No I never felt like this before
Yes I swear it's the truth
And I owe it all to you
'Cause I've had the time of my life
And I owe it all to you
I've been waiting for so long
Now I've finally found someone
To stand by me
We saw the writing on the wall
As we felt this magical
Fantasy
Now with passion in our eyes
There's no way we could disguise it
Secretly
So we take each other's hand
'Cause we seem to understand
The urgency
Just remember
You're the one thing
I can't get enough of
So I'll tell you something
This could be love because
I've had the time of my life
No I never felt this way before
Yes I swear it's the truth
And I owe it all to you
Hey, baby
With my body and soul
I want you more than you'll ever know
So we'll just let it go
Don't be afraid to lose control, no
Yes I know what's on your mind
When you say, "Stay with me tonight"
Just remember
You're the one thing
I can't get enough of
So I'll tell you something
This could be love because
I've had the time of my life
No I never felt this way before
Yes I swear it's the truth
And I owe it all to you
But I've had the time of my life
And I've searched though every open door
Till I found the truth
And I owe it all to you
(SOLO)
Now I've had the time of my life
No I never felt this way before
Yes I swear it's the truth
And I owe it all to you
I've had the time of my life
No I never felt this way before
Yes I swear it's the truth
And I owe it all to you
'Couse I've had the time of my life
And I've searched though every open door
Till I found the truth
And I owe it all to you...
(Bill Medley and Jennifer Warnes (I've Had) The Time of My Life - Dirty Dancing Soundtrack)
Aeka couldn't let that go, and made him sing one with her:
HER: They say we're young and we don't know We won't find out until we grow
HIM: Well I don't know if all that's true 'Cause you got me, and baby I got you
HIM: Babe
BOTH: I got you babe I got you babe
HER: They say our love won't pay the rent Before it's earned, our money's all been spent
HIM: I guess that's so, we don't have a pot But at least I'm sure of all the things we got
HIM: Babe
BOTH: I got you babe I got you babe
HIM: I got flowers in the spring I got you to wear my ring
HER: And when I'm sad, you're a clown And if I get scared, you're always around
HER: Don't let them say your hair's too long 'Cause I don't care, with you I can't go wrong
HIM: Then put your little hand in mine There ain't no hill or mountain we can't climb
HIM: Babe
BOTH: I got you babe I got you babe
HIM: I got you to hold my hand
HER: I got you to understand
HIM: I got you to walk with me
HER: I got you to talk with me I got you to kiss goodnight I got you to hold me tight I got you,
I won't let go I got you to love me so
BOTH: I got you babe I got you babe I got you babe I got you babe I got you babe
I Got You Babe Sonny and Cher
It was all in good
fun. It was getting late, and Sasami had nodded off on the
couch.
Mihoshi was yawning loudly. It was late and she had a bit
of Sake herself. Tenchi
carried Sasami to her room and barely made
it to his own. Ryoko and Mihoshi passed
out on the couch. It had
been a great day, and a great night. Tomorrow, was another day.
How
do I get through the night without you?
If I had to live without
you,
What kind of life would that be?
Oh, I need you in my
arms, need you to hold,
You're my world, my heart, my soul,
If
you ever leave,
Baby you would take away everything good in my
life,
And tell me now
How do I live without you?
I want
to know,
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go,
How
do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I
live?
Without you,
There'd be no sun in my sky,
There
would be no love in my life,
There'd be no world left for me.
And
I,
Baby I don't know what I would do,
I'd be lost if I lost
you,
If you ever leave,
Baby you would take away everything
real in my life,
And tell me now,
How do I live without
you?
I want to know,
How do I breathe without you?
If you
ever go,
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh
how do I live?
Please tell me baby,
How do I go on?
If
you ever leave,
Baby you would take away everything,
I need you
with me,
Baby don't you know that you're everything,
Real in my
life?
And tell me now,
How do I live without you,
I want
to know,
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go,
How
do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I
live?
How do I live without you?
How do I live without you baby? (How Do I Live - Written by Diane Warren)
Chapter 4
Ryoko woke up sometime before the birds began their morning
song. Not from a nightmare for a change. She looked over
at her
friend Mihoshi, snoring loudly. (Better to be woken that way.) She
felt the urge to check on Tenchi. Phasing just
outside his window,
she looked in. All seemed well. He slept peacefully. She felt
restless. (I wonder if Washuu is up?)
(I sure am!)(Oh...mind if
I come by?)(You never have to ask me that, come on down.) Ryoko made
her way to the broom
closet and into the lab. She found Washuu
working on some project. Many active holotop screens surrounded her
floating
in the air. At her daughters approach she looked up. She
looked anxious. Of course it was because of Tenchi's
imminent
departure. "Ryoko, I want to talk with you about
something." "Okay, sure." "Tell me about your
past, what you remember,
this is very important." Ryoko
snapped out of her funk and had an angry expression on her face,"I'm
not an experiment!"
Washuu began to speak rapidly,"Ryoko,
please listen. Give me a chance okay? Please, just trust me. I'm
trying to be the
concerned parent here." Ryoko calmed down a
bit. She looked upward, took a deep breath, and let it out. "Okay,
what do
you want me to remember, alot has happened to me."
"Well, start with the beginning, the earliest memories."
"Well, it is
kind of fuzzy. Some of the first things I
remember were being given orders by Kagato and going out on missions.
In the
process I killed people. I stole many ancient artifacts for
Kagato in his quest for power." Ryoko continued, and
spoke
dispassionately of many horrible atrocities she had
commited. (This is all wrong, she doesn't seem bothered by it.)
She
interrupted,"It must have been horrible for you, Ryoko."
A puzzled look appeared on her daughters face,"You know,
it
didn't really bother me then." Washu explained her
concern,"Ryoko, I tried the device to relive your memories,
throughout
them I felt your feelings of horror." Ryoko looked
perplexed,"That isn't how I felt at the time." This came as
a shock for
Washuu. Her device couldn't be faulty. "Are you
sure you didn't feel horrified at what you were doing?" Ryoko
thought
for a minute. She bowed her head and was silent. Washuu
was about to say something when Ryoko continued in a
very weak
voice. "It was enjoyable. It gave me pleasure." Washuu's
eyes grew wide at this. Ryoko continued. "I had
no choice, I
had to obey. In the beginning, I felt no emotion. Over time, I saw
the way people reacted towards me, and
I tried to understand it. I
began to like the recognition in their eyes...the fear of me. They
had feelings for me. After a
time the more brutal I was, the
stronger the reaction I got. That was the only relationship I had,
killer and victim. After
a time, I grew weary of it. I wanted to
get different responses. Something else...but since eveyone feared
me it was
never to be." Washuu was horrified. How could she
have been so cold and cruel, so...inhuman. Ryoko was
shaking
now,"Then I was sealed in the cave. Trapped with my
memories. My feelings. I had alot of time to contemplate what
I
had done. I thought I would be in there forever. I learned new
feelings. Despair, fear, hopelessness. In time, I found
I could
project myself outside of the cave, and observe. I saw people going
about their lives, happy, sad, in love. I felt
sorrow. I knew that
I could never have that. I was trapped forever. I began to feel
guilt. The people I killed. That which
I desired most, I had
deprived others of. What I would have given to be them. I wished for
merciful oblivion to envelop me.
I wanted it all to end."
Ryoko was crying now. As she grew introspective, she didn't care if
Washuu saw now. "Then...
he saw me." She paused and
looked up,"and the look on his face wasn't fear.
H-h-he...smiled at me." Washuu was
totally lost. The
feelings she was describing now agreed with what she had experienced
with her device. "He saw me,
after all that time, someone saw
me, and he wasn't afraid." (I have to understand this, what did
Kagato do to her, he
must have done something to her mind.) Washuu
could feel the pain in her daughters mind and carefully approached
her.
She looked into her eyes and saw the hurt there, the fear.
She put her arms around her and hugged her as a mother
holds her
daughter. Ryoko finally accepted her comfort as mother, and broke
down. Crying like never before. (I will get
to the bottom of this.
This is my only purpose in life now, to straighten her out.)
After
a time, she led Ryoko to a couch. She curled up into the fetal
position and Washuu placed a cover over her. (I need
to go over
the data again.) She analyzed and recross checked her data until the
sun came up. She had an answer.
Ryoko had stretched out a little
bit, awake, but with a blank expression on her face. Washuu pulled a
chair close to her
and sat. She reached over and took one of
Ryoko's hands in both of hers. "Kagato did some things to your
mind. He
closed doors to certain parts of your mind, and amplified
parts of others. There were feelings in you, but they were
trapped
down deep inside. He shut those parts of you away to be a
more effective...tool to him." Ryoko looked at her
mother,
and sadness showed in her eyes. "It will take some
time to figure it all out. The mind is very complex. It is not too
difficult
to find what was done. The tough part will be fixing it.
I might not even be able to sort it all out." She saw a look of
despair
from her daughter. She had to tell her something hopeful,
"Much has been fixed already though. Being out of
Kagato's
control for so long allowed your emotions to redevelop.
Merging with Zero did you some good as well. I will keep working
on
this, and I will take care of it." She had said the right thing.
A look of hope dawned across Ryoko's visage. Washuu
felt that was
enough for her to swallow for one sitting. There was still much for
her to deal with that day.
Tenchi awoke to the sound of his
alarm. He felt a little woozy from the sake. It suddenly dawned on
him. (I've got to get
ready!) He jumped up and quickly dressed. He
ran about the room and gathered the last of his personal items to
go
along, putting them in the top of his duffel bag. He ran down
the steps, placing the bag by the door. Sasami was up,
setting
food out on the table. Tenchi smiled at her, remembering how cute she
looked as her carried her up the steps
the night before. Mihoshi
was at the table already, and was yawning and stretching as Tenchi
sat down. He favored
her with a smiled that she returned sleepily.
Aeka came out of the kitchen carrying some more things for the table
and
looked at Tenchi, with a small smile, but a sad look in her
eyes. Yosho and Noboyuki were there as well. Tenchi's
father made
arrangements with work to come in later than usual so he could see
his son off. Only Washuu and Ryoko
were absent. Everyone was
generally silent, except for Noboyuki. He was excited for Tenchi. He
wished that he
could get away on a similar trip, but was very
happy for his only son. Aeka saw that Tenchi was concerned
about
something. He must be unhappy about not seeing me for the
summer, he won't admit it to me to spare the others
feelings.
After breakfast Tenchi went into the kitchen to see Sasami. He
kneeled down in front of her so they were
more eye to eye. "I
want to thank you Sasami, for always being the bright sunshine of the
house, and for keeping
the other girls in line too." He was
rewarded with a bright smile and giggle. He gave her a big hug and
kissed her
forehead. "Do me a favor, take care of everyone
while I am gone." She said,"I will for you!" with a
serious look on
her face. He stood, mussed her hair, and was
gone.
Mihoshi was sitting on the couch, watching some of the
morning cartoon shows. He sat next to her and placed an
arm around
her shoulders. Mihoshi seemed suprised at this unusual show of
emotion from Tenchi, then quickly
recovered and rested her head
against his shoulder for a moment. "I know I can count on you to
protect everyone
while I am gone." Mihoshi turned to him and
nodded soberly to him. She was on the verge of tears he could see.
He
gave her a quick hug and disappeared before the dam burst.
The
first part of his travel was to be a van that would pick him up at
the house and take him to the airport. It would
be arriving
shortly. He went to see Aeka. She was waiting at the door with Yosho
and Noboyuki. "Dad, Grandpa,
I'd just like a moment outside
alone with Aeka. They smiled and bowed out. Outside the weather was
very nice,
but there were thick clouds in the distance. He led her
out onto the deck that streched out over the water. He
truned to
face her and took both of her hands in his. "You know Aeka, this
isn't easy for me."
"Tenchi..."
"I will miss you, and think of you while I am gone. Take care of Sasami for me, and Grandfather."
"You know I will Tenchi...I"
Before she could say anything else, her grabbed her up in a big hug. Aeka began to melt against him...
Then he quickly broke away, and walked off. He moved like a man on a mission.
Back in the house, see seached. The rafter, the
baths, the roof, his room...to the lab.
He walked in to find
mother and daughter sleeping, one on a couch and the other in a
chair
nearby. (Should I wake them? They will have wanted to
good-bye, bu they are sleeping so
soundly. They must be getting
along better, getting closer. That's good. I'd better wake
them.)
He went to Washuu first, laid a hand on her shoulder, and slowly
moved it back and
forth. Washuu sat up, suddenly alert. She looked
at Tenchi with an unreadable expression.
"Little Washuu,
I am leaving soon. I wanted to say good-bye." Washuu smiled
then, "Tenchi,
I'm glad you came by. There's something I want
you to have. She got up and went to a table
and handed him a box.
"What's this?", he asked nervously. "Oh, it's no big
deal. It's not
even an invention of mine. It's a little something
for when you really miss us." He'd have to
trust her. "Thank
you, now I've got to wake Ryoko." Washuu looked at her
daughter,
concerned. The way she went to sleep, to wake up to
Tenchi to say goodbye. It might be
like a rubber band snapping.
"Tenchi, I want you to trust me on this. Let her be for
now."
He didn't like it. He looked at Ryoko sleeping. He looked at her face. Something was up.
"Okay, Little Washuu." He suprised her with a big hug, and was gone.
Out
front of the house, he met with his Father, Grandfather, and Aeka.
They walked towards
the road together, Noboyuki laughing and
patting his son on the back, wondering out loud
about all that his
son would see. The unusual thing about Tenchi's travel arrangements
was
that only Yosho knew where he was going. It was a secret to
keep the girls from tracking him
down. Tenchi was upset about not
getting a chance to say goodbye to Ryoko. Not only would
she be
mad at him, but he just felt miserable about it. All of a sudden, the
van was there.
Tenchi gave Aeka and his Father quick hugs then his Grandfather.
Yosho grew very solemn. "Learn all that
you can. There is much more to all this than Martial
Arts. I am
very proud of you." Tenchi nodded. He got onto the van and it
sped off. Just before
the bend, he waved, then was gone.
Ryoko
awoke alone. She sat up and looked around. (What time is it.) She
looked around wildy and
spotted a clock on the wall. (oh, no!) She
jumped up and was about to run screaming for the door
when in her
mind she heard (STOP, it's okay. You will see him off.) Washuu
appeared around the
corner. "He...he's gone?" Washuu
smiled,"Not yet, not exactly." Perplexed, Ryoko was about
to
ask for an explaination. Washuu just said,"Let's go to the
baths. After that, you can go see Tenchi
and say good bye. The
bath did Ryoko some good. She was still a little shook up from
her
revelations earlier that morning, but soaking in the hot water
cleared her mind. Afterwards she began
to get dressed in her
regular clothes when Washuu stopped her. "Wait, not those,
here." She handed
Ryoko something covered on a clothes
hanger. She removed the cover and saw the dress beneath,
eyes wide
with wonder. "Go ahead, try it on.' It wasn't a particularly
fancy or revealing dress. It was
a simple blue dress. The skirt
went to just above the knees, and it had short sleeves, with a
modest
cut to the neckline. A simple dress, yes. But on Ryoko, the
effect was stunning. "Here, before you
go, let me do your
hair." Washuu brushed her hair for a while, and then pulled it
all back into a pony
tail. "Okay, that'll do. Let me show
you," she pulled a map out of nowhere,"here we are, and
there is
the airport. Stay low when you get closes, I don't want
you running into any planes." Ryoko studied
the map for a
bit, then disappeared. (Thanks Mom.)(Sure thing
daughter.)
"Attention all passengers, due to the weather
in the vicinity, there will be a delay in all flights until
further
notice." Tenchi sat with his shoulders slumped. It was bad
enough that he didn't get to
say goodbye to Ryoko, but here he was
with all this wasted time he could have used to do so.
When he
arrived at the airport, the van driver told him the airline to check
in with. At the counter,
they had all his information on the
computer. They checked his baggage and handed him a
ticket. He
looked at his destination. (America, San Francisco, wow! Good thing
English was
one of the languages I took in school.) When the
excitement wore off, he noticed the tall storm
clouds all around
the airport. They were the obvious reason for the delay. Lost in his
thoughts,
he heard his name on the public address system,"Tenchi
Masaki, you have a call on the yellow
courtesy phone."
(Ryoko!) He got up and looked around for the courtesy phones, they
were
nowhere to be seen. He ran to the desk at the gate and the
woman there told him where to find
one. He reached it shortly and
grabbed the phone off the hook and breathlessly
said,"Hello...
hello?" No answer. Disappointed, he
hung up the phone and as he turned to go back to the
gate...
Before him stood Ryoko. Without thought he grabbed her and picked her
up and spun
her around. Any of the clouds left over in her mind
were swept away. (Oh, I wish I could have a
picture of the way he
looked at me just now!) He set her down and said,"How did you
find me?"
She titled her head down and looked into his eyes,"Washuu said you'd be here, so I came."
"Well, I'm glad you made it, I have a while to wait because of weather delays."
"Great, hey are you hungry Tenchi?"
"Well, yes actually!"
"Lets have lunch, it's on me okay?"
(Now where did she get money?)
Washuu was
not without resources, and managed to supply Ryoko with enough
yen
for a decent lunch at airport prices.
They sat together
while they ate, reminiscing about the times they had, laughing and
joking
together. It was a wonderful lunch. Towards the end,
Ryoko's brow furrowed, as if in thought.
She reached across the
table and took Tenchi's hand. He didn't pull it away, instead,
he
squeezed her hand in return. She looked into his eyes. There
were things she wanted to
say, but the time wasn't right yet.
Maybe when he returned...
They got up and began walking towards the gate where Tenchi's flight was parked.
"It's
time for you to go." Tenchi was about to ask for clarification
when she continued, "I'm not
very good at saying goodbye. I
haven't had much practice." He saw the sadness in her eyes.
He
pulled her into a hug. She pulled back a bit so she was face to face
with him. She wanted
to kiss him, but was too afraid of him
rejecting him at this moment, so she kissed him lightly
on the
cheek. They faced again, and looked deeply into each others eyes.
There was something
about her eyes, her look, her smile. Something
happened then, that just seemed so natural to
him. Her kissed her,
lightly, yet slowly on the lips. He broke off and looked into her
eyes again.
She had a mixed look of joy and sadness. She was about
to say something to him when he
put a finger to her lips,"Shhh,
wait until I get back. We can figure things out then."
"Attention, Continental flight 67 nonstop service to San Franciso will begin boarding, we would like..."
"Goodbye, Ryoko."
"Goodbye, my Tenchi."
They
parted and she started walking away. Tenchi just stood and watched
her go. He had suprised her,
and himself as well. Before she
turned the corner, she looked over her shoulder at him and
smiled...
then she was
gone.
Mixed
emotions, wasn't life full of them. Ryoko tore through the air at a
high rate of speed. Having all her
gems back allowed her to go
much faster than she ever had before. She felt her love for Tenchi,
her greatest
treasure. It made her feel stronger too. That kiss,
it would carry her through the following months. She had
some
things to work through, but she had her Mom and Mihoshi for support,
and her love. To think that the love
she had for him would finally
be returned filled her heart with joy. It eclipsed the sadness of his
departure.
Soon she was home. (Home, his home, my home.
Family. Love is the anchor that keeps me here, so that
I don't go
adrift.) She phased into the house and went to the lab. She found
Washuu looking over her many
screens. "Thanks for the weather
delay Mom." Washuu beamed,"Well, it was easy really, I just
had to stall
that cold front by..." Ryoko cut her off.
"Thanks anyway, it means more to me than you know." (Of
course I
know) Washuu thought to her (MOM! That was a private
moment!) "Did you think I could tune out that sudden
burst of
emotion from you?" Ryoko laughed, "Well I guess not."
Washuu though for a moment. "It has been
a tough day for you,
for both of us. Why don't we go over to my entertainment center and
watch a movies."
"Sure, okay."
Washuu's
'entertainment center' had about the same layout as a standard movie
theater, but with much nicer
places to sit - including a hot tub
if anyone felt so inclined. Washuu searched through the movies
available
to her until she found something Ryoko might enjoy
Batman Returns, mainly because of the Catwoman
character. She was
right.
Dinner was a quiet affair. Ryoko made it to the kitchen
in time to help Sasami prepare the meal. Sasami was
glad to see
Ryoko, she was worried when she wasn't around for lunch. During the
meal, the women all sat
close to each other. Aeka, Sasami, Ryoko,
and Mihoshi in that order. With Tenchi missing, they
unconciously
huddled together for reassurance. Yosho noticed this
and smiled. Maybe now they would learn to appreciate
each others
company more. After dinner, all four girls pitched in to clean up.
Yosho asked Ryoko to meet him
at the shire when she was finished,
and departed.
He found her waiting for him. It was a much faster trip for Ryoko up the stairs.
"Ryoko, I'm glad you
decided to do this. Today we begin with meditatation." They sat
in the small dojo
located within the shrine. "Okay sit like
this, make sure you are comfortable. Rest your hands like so.
Now
close your eyes. Relax. Think about your breathing. Breathe in
through your nose and out through
your mouth, now I want you to
clear your mind..." He went on to explain more of the
technique. It
seemed as though she was having a tough time with
it, but them she seemed to relax. Yes, thats it.
Yosho brought himself into a deep level of meditation...
Ryoko in deep. She found herself at a level of peace she had never known before. Then she heard a voice,
"Open your eyes."
Yosho
beaconed for Ryoko to rise. "That is enough for the first day.
You did very well." He bowed and she
returned it, then phased
away.
Tenchi
looked out the window over the ocean so far below. The plane was
still climbing, passing though some
thin cloud layers. (I'm on my
way. I wonder what they are doing right now?) Tenchi thought of the
box Washuu
had given to him. He was afraid to open it, but
curiousity go thte better of him. He found two things inside. One
was
a global satellite phone. One of those really high tech ones he'd
seen businessmen in Tokyo carry around.
(Well that's not so bad.)
The other was a group picture, wallet size. He smiled as he
remembered the occasion
it was taken. (That Washuu is really
something. I know time on those phones is really expensive, so I'll
try to
limit myself.) Soon the inflight entertainment system was
turned on. He looked through the guide to see what
movie he wanted
to see first. He decided on an action movie, but he watched it in
English, to practice his
comprehension. As the flight attendents
brought the meals by, they had a choice of Japanese or American
food.
(May as well get used to what I'll be eating) Not that
airline food was a benchmark for judging food served on
the
ground. He settled in for the long flight. Soon he started to get
sleepy, and the last thing he saw before
nodding off was the blue
sky out the window, blue like her dress...
Paradise
by Tesla
Hold me close now, hold me tight
Don't let go of me
tonight
You're all I want, you're all I need
Hold me close now,
hold me tight
Don't let go of me tonight
Sweet paradise, yeah
How I love all of those crazy little things
You've
said and done for me
You're the one for me
Darlin', dry your
eyes
I can't stand to see you cry
Now just turn and walk
away
Don't look back when I say goodbye paradise
Days go by
and life goes on
Feel I've been away too long
What I would give
to be with you
Days go by and life drags on
Feel I've been away
too long
For much too long, yeah
And all the while that I'm
away
Don't let our love fade away
Don't you fade away
Now as
sure as the sun is gonna shine
The day will come
Now I'm
waitin' for the day
There'll be no more sayin' goodbye
paradise
My sweet paradise
You are the reason why
It
tears me up inside
And I break down and cry
Didn't want to say
goodbye paradise
Comin' home to you tonight
Comin' home to
you tonight, so hold on tight
Tonight I'm on my way back home to
paradise
I'm so lost without you
I can't live without
you
I've been away too long now
Tonight I'm on my way back home
to you
My, my paradise
My, my paradise
To hold
you in my arms, you're all that I adore
To see your smilin' face
as I walk through the door, yeah
I'll never say goodbye again, no
All text enclosed within brackets in Tenchi scenes is being spoken in Japanese.
Chapter 5
Tenchi dozed on and off
lightly throughout the 10 hour flight. He woke up for the meals, and
only
managed to watch one movie. He tried not to think too much,
he wanted to be rested for his
arrival. (I wonder what
arrangements have been made for me at the airport.) After his flight
was
parked at the gate, they began offloading. Tenchi made his way
out and up the ramp. He felt
a little funny. It didn't seem right
that it was light outside. Jet lag, he'd heard of it. He felt
a
little excited. (America! To finally see America!) Once inside
the airport, he looked about.
He couldn't recall ever seeing so
many different people in one place (makes my house seem
downright
plain.) It was a little disorienting, the many different clothing
styles, skin colors,
manners of speaking. (No wonder these are
called international airports.)
Tenchi breezed through
customs. He was worried that the Tenchi-Ken would bring
unwanted
attention. They just dismissed it as a decorative
piece.
Once inside the main terminal he was lost. (Okay, I'm here.
Now what am I supposed to do?)
Then out of nowhere he saw a sign
with his name on it, written in Japanese. He focused on it
and
moved in. The man holding the sign was searching about. He was about
5' 8", with short
curly hair and light brown skin, and a
small mustache. Tenchi stood before him and caught his
eye. The
man, who looked to be about 22 smiled and said, Hello, are you
Tenchi Masaki?
Yes sir.
Do you speak English?
"Yes."
"That's great, because all the Japanese I know is what I just said!"
Tenchi
smiled at this,"Okay, but please speak more slowly. I have not
had much practice with
normal conversational English."
"Let
me introduce myself. My name is Raoul Fernandez. My fathers name is
Ernesto. He is the
man you will be training with. He asked me to
be your guide while you are here."
Tenchi slowly absorbed
this information, at least the words he understood. "I am
pleased to meet
you Raoul. Do you know where I have to go to get
my luggage?"
"Sure, let's go!"
Raoul
stepped off with a springy, energetic gait. Tenchi walked behind him
as he was led through the
terminal. Soon they stood before the
luggage pickup point, and the bags slowly made their way onto
the
conveyor. After retrieving his duffel, they walked outside. Cars were
lined up as people loaded and
unloaded. The weather was very
pleasant, a little warm with a light breeze. Everything just
smelled
different to Tenchi, and things just didn't seem as clean
as he was used to. Soon Raoul was waving
to someone, and a green
Jeep Cherokee pulled up. A woman about Raoul's age got out, with
dark
sandy blonde hair and dark eyes, with skin just a little
darker than Raoul. She smiled at Tenchi and
said,"Hello
Tenchi, my name is Maria. Let's just get your bags in here and we can
talk on the way.
They don't like you parking here too long."
Tenchi kind of caught what she meant, and followed her
to the back
of the truck and placed his bags inside. Once they were on their way
Raoul gave Maria
a quick kiss and said in a joking manner,"Maria
is my wife, so don't you be getting any funny ideas."
The
impression Tenchi had of Raoul was of a happy, funny, charismatic
individual. Maria seemed
outgoing as well, very friendly, and very
pretty. They spoke rapidly in what seemed like Spanish
sometimes,
between pointing out the sights and talking to him. "So how was
your flight Tenchi?"
"It was okay. I tried to rest mostly."
"When you aren't training with Papa, we are going to show you around, and take you out partying!"
(Partying? Well, when in Rome!) "That sounds like fun."
"We'll
get you to the house and feed you a nice dinner. Then we'll get you
settled in. You will need a
good nights sleep after such a flight.
Papa is out taking care of some things. He will be back
later
tonight, and sends his regrets for not being able to greet
you at the house. You will see him in the
morning." They
seemed to notice Tenchi was beginning to nod off, and talked quietly
together.
"Okay we're here!"
Tenchi woke and
sat up, a little disoriented. He saw that they were sitting in the
driveway of a modest
two story house in a suburban neighborhood.
Raoul got his bags for him and led him into the house.
He showed
him where the guest bedroom was and set his bags inside, and walked
him out to the backyard.
"Have a seat, relax," as he
indicated a lounge chair on the back patio. "Would you like a
beer?" Tenchi
didn't want to refuse the hospitality, and a
beer sounded good right about now, so he accepted. Relaxing
in the
shade with a cold one too, Raoul chatted away. Apparently from what
Tenchi could gather, his
Father taught Martial Arts part time, and
did some light residential construction work full time. Raoul
helped
his father with the dojo sometimes, but he and Maria worked full time
and were saving money
so they could move out of their apartment
and into a house. Maria did administrative work for a corporation
and
Raoul worked at a machine shop. Someday he wanted to open his own
shop, but he admitted he
had much to learn about the trade yet.
Tenchi couldn't help but like the guy. Thankfully, he hadn't
been
asked much, because he was better at listening to English
than speaking it, and he wasn't sure what of
his homelife he would
be able to relate. After about three beers, Tenchi was beginning to
nod off again.
About that time Mrs. Fernandez came home. She was a
slightly plump woman with dark eyes and hair,
with very light
skin. When Raoul introduced Tenchi she came over and gave him a big
hug. She reminded
Tenchi of Aeka and Sasami's mother Misaki. She
remarked on what a handsome young man he was and
insisted that he
refer to her as Tia. After a little while she excused herself so she
could go to the kitchen
and help Maria finish making dinner.
Tenchi felt very welcome here, and couldn't get over how nice
they
all were to him. After a pleasant dinner with Tia, Raoul and
Maria they suggested he take a shower and
try to get some sleep.
(Sounds good to me.) After a nice hot shower, Tenchi settled in and
was fast
asleep when his head hit the
pillow.
Ryoko
was beginning to get over her euphoria, and little nagging doubts
started at the back
of her mind. (Was he just caught up in the
moment? Did he kiss Aeka too? Has he finally
chosen me, or was he
just being nice and kissed me so I would not be as sad?) She
pondered
all this over Sake in the womens bath, enjoying the warm
feeling inside and out. She wanted to
ask Aeka if he'd kissed her
too, but in a way she didn't want to know. She had been on
an
emotional roller coaster for the past few days, and now with
Tenchi gone she had some other
issues to work out. But first, more
Sake...
Washuu peered in on her daughters mind. She was
getting drunk. (Well, might actually be good
for her right now.
Good old fashioned remedy for what ails her.) In her lab, she was
going over
her info on Ryoko's mind and memories. The "sunglasses"
were on a workbench in front of her.
She was going over the data
deciding how to modify them to reflect what Ryoko actually felt
on
the surface of her mind. She was experimenting with different
filters to adjust the output. It was
difficult, since Ryoko's mind
had changed so much in the past few thousand years. There was
no
common baseline to follow. She formulated some algorithms based on
her notes of Ryoko's
creation interpolated with her current data,
but it was conjecture. It was truly impossible to
accurately
recreate what she felt at any given moment in the past. Maybe if she
could get some
data from Clay on Zero's composition... No, never
happen. (Well, there is something I can do.)
She reformatted the
data, to eliminate the emotional feelings - right up until the
imprisionment.
Ryoko said that was when her feelings began to
really surface. Okay, first problem solved. Even
if noboby else
would use it but herself, she wanted her invention as close to
perfect as possible.
After all, how can you recreate imperfect
memories? Next, a look at these nightmares. Washuu
went over some
of her information on the psychology of dreams. Study of Ryoko's
nightmares
alone could make a psychologists career. Washuu
carefully sorted the data. Occasionally, she
had to place on the
VR glasses to relive a particular scene. (Ahh, here we go! This makes
sense,
if I just remove this block, then...oh no.) Washuu
found a problem. Ryoko's nightmares were
the result of the
centuries long repression of her true feelings. The nightmares were
her minds
ongoing attempts to reconcile the subconscious with the
conscious. The barrier that Kagato
had placed in her mind slowed
that process. If the barrier were removed the nightmares
would
sometimes engulf her when awake. The result would be...(What
do they call it here on Earth?
Post Traumatic Stress Disorder?)
Unwittingly, Kagato had put in something helpful. Looking
at some
of her charts she noticed an anomaly. She narrowed the timeline down
to when she
was resurrected. The barrier had come down for a
little while, why? She placed on the VR
glasses and relived the
resurrection. (Oh, I see! The shock of being revived, along with
the
pain from touching the Tenchi-Ken brought the barrier down.
I'll have to talk to Ryoko about
this one.) She did some research
into post traumatic stress disorder (PTSD), following
some case
studies of combat veterans on many different planets. Ryoko's did not
follow the
norm, of course neither did her situation. It explained
much of her behavior, but it also gave
rise to more questions,(I
think I may never unravel all this, Damn that Kagato!) Washuu
was
getting frustrated, and very upset. (Who do I go to for comfort?) At
that moment, she
felt very much alone.
Sasami had prepared
breakfast alone, and was starting on lunch. Both Ryoko and Washuu
had
been absent from breakfast. She was starting to worry a bit. Aeka
dismissed Ryoko's
disappearance as a return to her old ways, "Now
that Tenchi is away, she doesn't have to try
to impress him
anymore." Lunch was almost ready, and nobody was around, so she
decided
to round everyone up herself. (Washuu is probably caught
up in her experiments, and just
needs a friendly reminder.) Sasami
braved her way inside the lab, where she found Washuu
leaning over
her workbench, with her face buried in her hands, obviously upset.
"What's wrong
Washuu?" The red headed scientist looked
at the young princess, pain apparent in her green
eyes. (Tsunami,
she is someone I could turn to. But not for quite some time yet.
Couldn't
hurt to talk about it, but I don't want to burden a
little girl with these troubles.) Sasami continued,
"You
know, sometimes it helps to talk about it." She didn't know what
else to say, but she saw
the hurt in Washuu's expression. It
pained her to see anyone unhappy, so without another
thought she
went to Washuu and hugged her. Finding this strangely comforting she
hugged the
little girl back, and tears began to fall silently.
"C'mon Washuu, you'll feel better if you have
something to
eat, your work isn't going anywhere is it?" Thinking of Ryoko's
attachment to
Tenchi, she thought out loud, "I sure hope
not."
Aeka, Sasami, and Washuu had a quiet lunch. Sasami
kept an eye on Washuu with a concerned
expression. Washuu noticed
this and smiled,"Thoughtful and caring beyond her years this
one."
It was reassuring to have someone worried about her.
She pondered the Sasami/Tsunami
relationship. (I wonder how much
each affects the other. How many thoughts and feelings spill
over?
Is the concern I see from Sasami alone?)
Mihoshi returned from
patrol and decided to take a bath. She found Ryoko there putting away
the
sake and joined her. "So it's just us girls now Ryoko.
I'll bet you really miss him, don't you."
"Well, you know how I feel about him Mihoshi. I'm lost without him." She began to sulk.
"I didn't notice if you got to say goodbye
to him or not, I didn't see you around that day until
he was
gone." At this Ryoko seemed less unhappy. She poured Mihoshi a
bit of sake.
"Well I did see him off actually...in fact", Ryoko lowered her voice,"He kissed me goodbye."
Mihoshi's fists flew to her mouth while giving off a little squeal. "Oh, Ryoko, I'm so happy for you!"
She
started shedding tears of joy while giving her friend a big
hug.
Ryoko broke from the hug and confessed her doubts.
"Do you want me to ask Aeka about it? To see if he kissed her too?"
Ryoko considered this. "No, but thanks. If he
did, I'm sure it will come out sooner or later, but keep
this
between you and I, okay?"
"My lips are sealed!"
Aeka made her way to the baths after lunch to
find (the odd couple) chatting away and drinking.
(Well, just as I
thought. Tenchi leaves and she's back to the old Ryoko.) It was a
relief in a way.
To think that Ryoko could be anything other than
a rowdy mischeivous cretin...made her less
sure that Tenchi
would return with her to Jurai one day. She did have a grudging
respect for the
space pirate though, when things were tough you
could count on her. With Tenchi gone, the
times would seem tough
indeed.
Mihoshi spotted Aeka first,"Hi Aeka, c'mon and have a drink with us."
"I'm not sure if this is a good time..."
Ryoko spoke up, "The more the merrier, lets have a toast...to Tenchi!"
With that, Aeka gave
in. Soon all three women were feeling pretty good. Aeka managed to
loosen
up a little. Ryoko began having her fun. "So Princess,
since Tenchi is gone will you be heading
home soon?"
Aeka
replied angrily, "For your information, I consider this my home
until Tenchi returns with me to
Jurai." A dreamy look
appeared on her face, "He will realize I am the one for him, and
he will come
back with me and we will rule, side by
side."
Mihoshi saw a chance, and used her police training
for getting information from a suspect without them
realizing,"Oh
Aeka, can you imagine what that first kiss will be like?"
Ryoko
tensed. Mihoshi sensed this and held her friends hand under the
water. Aeka had that dreamy
look on her face still, "Ahhh...it
would be under Funaho, in the moonlight, a warm summer evening.
He
will confess his love for me, and that first kiss...it will be
magical."
Ryoko digested this. Mixed feelings again. (He
kissed me, not her. He did choose! Maybe he doesn't
know it yet
but he did! ) Then she thought of Aeka. She loved teasing her, but
this would really hurt her.
Hurt her in a way that she didn't
think she could handle herself. In that moment, she decided to try to
be
nicer to Aeka. Not knowing that this would be unsettling to the
Princess. "Well Aeka, that does sound
very romantic. Best of
luck to you." Aeka's jaw dropped. (What's this? So much for
relief.)
Little did anyone know, but Ryoko could rapidly
process alcohol out of her body when necessary. She
did this now
for two reasons. She didn't feel the need to be drunk anymore and she
wanted to make sure
she didn't say the wrong thing to Aeka. She
would have to measure her words very carefully around the
Princess
for a while. "Well, it's been fun. I'd better go help Sasami
with dinner." With that, she rose
from the water, dried and
got dressed. The remaining two women watched, astonished, as the
Masaki
Shrine Demon went from totally loaded, to apparently
sober.
Sasami was glad Ryoko was back. It was more fun when
she had her help in the kitchen. Ryoko was
making good progress.
In the week and a half that she had been learning, she'd managed to
get a
handle on many of the basics. It was rewarding for Sasami to
see her teaching taking hold. In about
three more weeks, Ryoko
would be able to make some basic dishes alone. The fact that Sasami
had
the patience of a Goddess sure helped.
Ryoko had
cheered up immensely. Washuu sensed this and felt better herself
(What's gotten into you
now.)(I'll tell you later Mom.)
Yosho
was evaluting the actions on the women at dinner. Everyone seemed
cheerful (especially Ryoko),
except Aeka. She seemed a little
uncomfortable. It seemed as if Ryoko was getting along better
with
everyone. She wasn't even fighting with Aeka. (Seems like
this plan is working better than I thought.)
"Ryoko, please meet me for training one hour after dinner."
She replied cheerfully,"Yes sir!"
Later at the shrine...
"Ryoko, let me lay out the
ground rules. First, no using powers while we spar. That means no
flying,
teleporting, or energy discharges. Just plain old wooden
swords." She nodded. But wondered, (How
can I become a more
effective fighter by limiting myself? Well, this is more for him than
me I guess.)
"Now when we meditate, keep that in your mind."
Ryoko found that meditation was very pleasant. It was rest without nightmares.
"Open your eyes." She complied. "Now today we will start with light sparring. I want to evaluate your
skills."
They faced each other in
the dojo, and bowed. 700 years has passed since the two of them
crossed
swords. They both had this thought in their heads. It was
a solemn moment, and they both felt that
something needed to be
said. Not sure how to begin, they just stood there for a bit. Silent,
and
unmoving. Then Yosho said, "It is an honor, to finally
meet you under better circumstances." Ryoko,
speechless for a
moment, then "Ditto."
They started slowly. Feeling
each other out. Ryoko held her strength in check, then slowly
increased
her speed. Yosho was taking note of every move (Crude,
yet effective. She relies too much on her
strength, not so much on
form. She is very fast, yes. There is much for her to learn, but she
will in time
surpass Tenchi and I.) After fifteen minutes or so
Yosho called a halt. "Now Ryoko, we start with the
basics.
Please follow my motions." He began the kata, and she followed
along.
After training, Ryoko took a quick bath and went to see
her mother. Washuu wanted to find out how the
training had gone.
"So, how did you handle it?" Ryoko replied,"Well, it
seemed a little strange at first,
considering our history. But it
was alright. No problem." Washuu seemed a little relieved.
"Well, there
are some things I'd like to talk to you about,
but they can wait a while. In the meantime, want to watch
a movie
with me?" Ryoko smiled and agreed, remembering "Catwoman".
Washuu had a movie already
picked out, based on her earlier
research. Let's see what Ryoko thinks of "First Blood."
Ryoko
watched the movie, and as it progressed, she became totally
engrossed. It was about a war
weary veteran, with no family and
friends, who just wandered. All he wanted was peace, but could
not
return to a normal life because of the trauma his mind had
suffered. Washuu watched her daughter
during a scene where the
veteran loses it because of a PTSD related flashback, and subdues his
police
captors and escapes. At first her expression was of
concern, then it changed to glee as he escaped
and made fools of
those chasing him down. Ryoko's reaction to the movie pleased
Washuu,(It will
give me a good starting point when we finally talk
about some of the problems.)
Later that night, Ryoko sat on
the roof thinking about Tenchi. She had finally come to grips with
the fact
that she was the one. It made her miss him even more.
Yawning she decided that she would fulfill a long
held desire, to
sleep in Tenchi's bed. She phased through the roof into his room,
which seemed so
empty without him. She snuggled down in his
covers, hugging his pillow. She could pick up a bit of his
scent.
This comforted her, to lay where he did. Slowly, Ryoko drifted off to
sleep.
She was dreaming, a fight across the galaxy. Then on
Earth, a mighty fight. Except this time it was
Kagato instead of
Yosho. They fought forever it seemed. Then suddenly, Kagato changed
into Tenchi?
No! She was fighting Tenchi? No! This has to stop!
She was about to deliver a killing strike when...
Someone
was shaking her, telling her to wake up. It was Mihoshi. Ryoko sat up
and saw Mihoshi, Sasami,
Aeka and Washuu all around her. She
grabbed onto Mihoshi like her life depended on it and started
crying.
Washuu was at her side, stroking her hair and back,
telling her everything was alright, that it was just a dream.
Sasami
held her hand. Aeka kneeled nearby, unsure of what to do. Then she
had an idea, and went to fetch
some tea. When Ryoko had calmed
down, Aeka gave her some tea, which she accepted gratefully.
When
they were satisfied that she was okay, Aeka and Sasami went
back to bed. Mihoshi wouldn't leave her, and
neither would Washuu.
The three slept in Tenchi's room the rest of the
night.
Tenchi
woke up in a strange place. He sat up quickly, then realized where he
was. The sunlight streaming
in the window had brought him out of
his deep sleep. He got dressed and made his way downstairs. He
looked
around the house, not finding anyone until he reached the kitchen. He
found a man there he hadn't
met yet. He had the morning paper in
front of him, and a cup of tea. Ernesto Fernandez had long wavy
hair
tied back into a ponytail. His hairline had receded to leave
him bald on top. He looked up from his paper
and gave Tenchi a
very warm and friendly smile. Tenchi Masaki! I am very glad to
finally meet you. Mrs.
Fernandez left early, but set aside a plate
of breakfast for you. Please help yourself. It is in the
oven.
While his Japanese was heavily accented, it was
perfectly understandable. It put Tenchi at ease. He
quickly found
the food and dug in. The food they served her was different, but very
good. Ernesto sat
quietly while Tenchi ate. He was completing the
daily crossword puzzle, it was his daily mental exercise.
When
Tenchi finished Ernesto said, Just put that in the sink. We will go
to the studio and meditate for
a bit, then we'll get started.
They rode together in Ernesto's Chevy station wagon to an industrial
area.
His studio turned out to be a section of a warehouse. It was
secluded, and gave them all kinds of room.
They chatted for a bit.
It turned out that Ernesto didn't actually know Katsuhito Masaki, but
knew of him
through a mutual acquaintance. As it turned out, his
grandfather was a bit of a legend in the sword fighting
community.
Nobody knew where to find him, else he would be constantly approached
by aspiring students.
Ernesto politely avoided any questions that
would yield useful information in tracking him down. The deal
was
that Tenchi would get to spar with the worlds best, and in return
allow them to study the techniques
he used. To have the student of
the legendary sensei come by to train was a great honor indeed.
Tenchi
would later find out that all his travel expenses were
covered by the Masters he would visit.
After meditation, Ernesto broke out the Kendo armor. The bamboo sword was his practice weapon of
choice. Tenchi had used it before, but was used to
being unencumbered. Ernesto could tell that Tenchi
was not happy
with the armor. It's for me mostly, my old bones can't take the
beating of Bokken anymore.
Tenchi laughed at this. Ernesto looked
to be about twenty years younger than Yosho, (but then again,
when
was the last time I actually landed a strike on him?) They
faced off across the floor and bowed. The first
thing Tenchi
realized was that the face mask portion of the armor would prevent
either of them telegraphing
their strikes with eye movement. (I'll
have to watch for turns of the head instead.) Ernesto was very
good,
and Tenchi found himself sweating profusely fending off the
older swordsman. (This armor is going to take
getting used to.) He
began to see why his Grandfather had wanted him to experience
variety. Ernesto's
different technique and pace was throwing him
off balance, not to mention the armor. Tenchi had to give
the best
he had just to defend himself. After a while, Ernesto called a halt.
This old man needs a break
now. Let's get out of this armor. He
passed Tenchi a water bottle and they rested for a moment.
Alright
now young man, let's see how your empty hand technique
measures up! Ernesto apparently had blackbelts
in six different
forms of fighting. Tenchi didn't do as well against the Master this
time. Tenchi managed to
get thrown to the mat four times, but had
landed two strikes for every three of Ernesto's. Some of
the
techniques he used were new to Tenchi, and they spent half an
hour reviewing them. It was a grueling
morning for the both of
them. They stopped for lunch at a Boston Market fast food restaurant
on the way
back to the house. Once there, Tenchi was told to make
himself at home. Ernesto had to go meet with
a customer, so Tenchi
would be alone for a bit. He settled in front of the TV and began
surfing the
channels.
Ryoko
woke up to find she wasn't alone. Mihoshi was on the floor next to
the bed, and Washuu was curled up
in bed alongside her daughter.
She remembered the dream (What was that about? Me trying to hurt
Tenchi?)
She shook her head and made her way downstairs to help
Sasami. Sasami looked at her friend with concern.
Ryoko just
smiled reassuringly and said, "I'm alright, just another
nightmare is all." Sasami continued to look
at her, now with
skepticism. "I think you should talk about it with someone,
definitely." Ryoko sighed,"Well,
okay, but only because
I don't want you to worry." They began preparations. Ryoko was
eyeing a jar of habanero
peppers curiously. "Sasami, why do
they call these hot? They don't feel hot?" Sasami giggled,"They
taste
hot silly!" Ryoko looked puzzled,"Taste...hot?"
Sasami giggled again, "You know, they're really really
spicy.
When I use one of those I have to use a very small amount or the
inside of your mouth would feel
like it was on fire." Ryoko
continued to consider the jar. She opened it and popped one in her
mouth. Sasami
watched in disbelief as Ryoko chewed carefully, a
look on her face as she considered the flavor. "Well, I
don't
see what you mean, it seemed like any old vegetable to me." The
jar forgotten, Ryoko continued with
the cooking. Sasami thought,
(I have to tell Washuu about this.)
Everyone was relieved to
see that Ryoko was back in her new routine (except Aeka) after her
nightmare.
After clean up Ryoko decided to find a quiet place
somewhere to meditate. Sasami sought Washuu out
in the lab.
"Washuu? Can I see you for a bit?" "Sure, come on
down."
Sasami related the hot pepper eating incident. Washuu
thanked her and went over her data again with
this new bit of
information in mind. (I only looked at the psychological blocks in
her mind, I never even
considered the physiological ones. How
could I have missed them?) As she ran a few diagnostics
she found
what she was looking for, (Here, yes...that explains that one. Now
what else?) She looked
through a few more and spotted another.
(Oh, that beast! He removed any distraction he could! Well,
I'll
talk to her about this another day. These I can eventually do
something about.) She set about
formulating solutions to the new
problems at hand.
Ryoko sat quietly in a small clearing in the
woods away from the house. She sat so still, that birds and
small
animals began their normal local activities around her. Without any
real training, she was capable
of reaching very deep levels of
meditation. Her time in the cave developed these skills for her.
After a
while her gems began to glow softly. With all three
returned, and in her deep trance, the power hidden
in the red
jewels began to slowly heal some of the damage in her mind.
I
wake in the night
to find you on my mind
Deep in a
dream,
you'll always be
until the end of time
I look in your
eyes
They touch my soul
My love is hard to hide
I'm never
alone when we're apart.
I feel you by my side
And here in
my heart,
where no one else will ever be
I know who you are,
so
lock the door and throw away the key
Save all your love
Save
your love for me
When I'm alone at night,
you're all I see
I
wake from a dream
and see you by my side
How could I belong to
someone else,
when holdin' you feels so right?
And here in my
heart
where no one else will ever be
We've made it so far,
so
lock the door and throw away the key
Save all your love
Save
all your love for me
When I'm alone at night,
you're all I
see
Save all your love
Save your love for me
Don't turn
your back on me
You're all I need (Save Your Love - Great
White)
Chapter 6
Tenchi quickly began bored
with the television programming. He had
a tough time understanding
the rapidly spoken english, and didn't
get most of the jokes in
the sitcoms. He was so used to a demanding
physical schedule that
he became restless. Tenchi went out to the
backyard and began
running through some of the empty hand routines
Ernesto had shown
him. Soon he grew tired, and realized that after
his morning
session, he was overtraining. (Okay, let me try some
meditation.)
He relaxed sitting in the lotus position in the shade.
No luck,
this wasn't working either. His problem stemmed from the
subconscious
realization he had to resolve the whole Ryoko/Aeka issue.
Raoul
stopped by after work to check on Tenchi. He started work very
early,
but Maria kept normal hours so he always had a few hours to
kill
before she got home. "Hey Tenchi! Just dropping by to check
up
on you. Mama is visiting with some friends and Papa is getting
in
late again tonight. How about you hang out at my place for a
while?"
Tenchi agreed. Taking a quick shower, he got dressed
and rode with
Raoul to his apartment. "I hope Papa took it
easy on you the first
day." Tenchi winced, thinking about the
times he was thrown onto
the floor. Raoul saw this look and
laughed. "I been in your shoes
before, believe me, I know."
They arrived at Raoul's place and he
was given the quick tour. It
was a single bedroom apartment with a
small living area with a
combination kitchen/dinette. Raoul offered
him another beer, which
he greatly accepted. It would make him
relax. Raoul began to tell
Tenchi some amusing stories about his
early training with his
Father. The conversation started branching
off to other things.
Tenchi enjoyed talking to Raoul. Tenchi asked
about Maria, and how
they met. "Well, I've known her since I began
High School. It
was funny, at first I never really noticed her. I
had a few girls
who liked me, and I went out alot with them. I
usually went out
with a group of people, once in a while alone
with a girl. Maria
was in with my circle of friends, but I never
really looked at her
as more than that. After a couple years, I
grew really attached to
this one girl I'd been dating. We started
going steady, and I
thought I was in love with her. Then one day
she dumped me for a
senior. I wasn't happy about that of course,
but then Maria was
there - as a friend. I talked to her about it,
and it was very
comforting to have her listen to me. After that,
I would talk with
her anytime I felt down or had a problem. I
started dating again,
but never asked Maria out. After a bit
she started hanging out
with the crowd less and less. I was too
young then to realize how
much she cared for me. In our senior
year, I began to consider the
prom. Who would I go with? I
was talking to some of my friends
about it one day, when someone
suggested Maria. All of a sudden,
it all made sense. I went
and found her. She seemed a little
distant when I started to
talk to her, but when I asked her to the
prom, she brightened
right up. Then on the night of the prom, I
went to pick her
up. Standing in her house, I saw her walk down
the stairs,
when it finally hit me. I'd never really looked at
her
before until that moment. She was so beautiful. After
that
night I new that she was the one. It just happened, I was
in
love." Tenchi listened to it all with interest.
He
asked, "So how did all your other girlfriends handle that?"
Raoul
looked at him with a smile, "Well, I can say a couple
were not
very happy, but life goes on, you know?" Tenchi
decided to
relate his dilemma to Raoul. Leaving out the alien and
royalty
parts of course. "So you kissed Ryoko, huh? And you
are still
having doubts?"
"No not really doubts.
I'm not sure how to proceed when I get
back home."
"So, do you love her?"
"Well, in a way..."
"I
think you should do some soul searching, and meditate on it.
I
believe you know the answer already. When you are ready to
admit
it to yourself, I think you should tell her."
Tenchi was silent, looking at the floor, deep in thought.
"Here have another beer."
Ryoko
came out of her meditative state. Startled by sudden
movement, the
birds and squirrels scattered. She got up and
stretched. She took
in the details of her surroundings. (It
really is beautiful here.
She walked slowly back to the house,
taking in the sights. Then
she noticed how low the sun was in
the sky. (How long was I out
there?) As she walked in she saw
Sasami cleaning up after
dinner,"Oh Ryoko, there you are! I was
worried about you,"
she said while running up to the ex-pirate
and giving her a big
hug. Taking her hand she said,"Here, I
saved a plate for
you." Ryoko sat down to eat while Sasami
hovered over her
like a worried mother. Ryoko noticed this
and smiled,"Don't
worry about me, I'm just fine." And she
meant it. It was a
beautiful day, she had a nice walk to the
house, and she had a
caring friend nearby. She felt...
balanced? She didn't ever
recall ever feeling like this.
Sasami seemed to notice Ryoko's
tranquil demeanor, and went
about the rest of the clean up. When
Ryoko was finished, she
cleaned her own dishes and went to visit
Washuu. Being
cheerful, when she saw the little redhead she called
out,
"Hi Mom!" Pleasantly suprised by this Washuu turned
and
smiled, (My, aren't we full of cheer...what is she
up
to?) "Whatcha doing?" Washuu was working on her
computer
running models of how different ways of fixing Ryoko's
mind
would turn out. She needed an updated baseline. "oh,
just
going over some data. Could you do me a favor? Put this
on
for a minute." Ryoko hesitated suspiciously, then
complied.
After downloading what she needed, Washuu removed
the device
from Ryoko's head and saved the data. "What I'm
doing is
figuring out ways to undo the damage done by Kagato.
I've
found more things wrong," Ryoko's eyes began getting
bigger,
"But the new things are easy fixes."
"What about the nightmares."
Washuu sighed at this, "There's
nothing I can do now, but
I must tell you, in time they will go
away."
Ryoko brightened a little, but Washuu held up her
hand, "I
wouldn't expect them to end any time soon though, I
just
wanted you to know that someday, you will be free of
them."
Ryoko remembered her time in the cave, the worst
part of it
being that she thought it would never end. So knowing
that
the nightmares would end was a beginning.
Washuu began
a partial list of someof the things that were
done, and told her
what she could fix soon. Some of those
things were very private in
nature. "I should have some of
my models complete in a few
days. I could begin removing
most of the physiological blocks
then. The psychological
blocks will take much longer."
"Can I think about this first?"
Washuu was suprised. Her
daughter, who was such a pleasure
seeker, was considering a delay
in having such things restored?
"Of course you can, but can I ask why?"
"Some of those things, I want Tenchi
around when I start to
experience them."
Washuu
understood then. He could share her joy in the new senses.
Washuu
smiled at her daughter, "Okay then, in the meantime, I'll
work
on some of the other solutions."
Ryoko then remembered
her training with Yosho then, "Gotta run,
bye Mom!" With
that, she disappeared.
Washuu returned to her new data, and
ran a quick comparison with
the last one. A few differences jumped
out at her. Concerned,
she ran them through the computer. (The
levels of neurotransmitters
have changed? Why?) The chemistry in
Ryoko's brain had altered
slightly. She ran some analysis on the
new data to see the
implications. She compared the old to the new
again. She looked
at the old chart, (Here we have the classic
neurochemistry of acute
attention deficit disorder.) She did some
research on this, (Kagato
again. I don't think he specifically did
this, it may be a side
effect of his tampering.) Her new chart,
however, had a different
pattern, (now she has the patterns of a
mild case. What changed
her?) New questions being raised again.
The most difficult thing
was with her unique biochemistry, all
this analysis was uncharted
territory. While she could draw
comparisons to other humanoids,
her daughter was different enough
to throw it all off a little.
She dumped all her currently running
models,(Well, back to the old
drawing board.)
Ryoko
appeared outside the house. It was still nice out, with about
two
hours of daylight left. She decided to run up the long steps
to
the shrine instead of using her powers. It was actually
pleasant,
enjoying the feel of the stone steps and she lightly
bounded up them.
She noticed flowers here and there that had never
caught her attention
before. (I'll have to check them out on the
way down, I think I'm
late.) With that thought, she phased to the
top of the steps. Yosho
stood there, waiting patiently. "Well,
I was beginning to think you
got lost." Ryoko apologized, and
bowed. "Since it is so nice out,
let's train out here today."
He tossed her a katana, which meant no
sparring today. She
fastened it about her waist, feeling silly
wearing a sword when
she had her built in energy blade. Yosho began
movements,
motioning here to mimic and learn them. After he showed
her twice,
he motioned for her to try doing it on her own. To his
amazement,
she went through the whole set, with only two minor errors.
He
blinked, then went through it again with her one more time,
and
mentioned the mistakes as they reached those parts. Then he
had her
repeat the moves alone again. She did,
flawlessly.
"Again."
It was a repeat performance.
"Again."
Same deal, it wasn't a fluke.
"Again, faster."
She complied, effortlessly.
"Again, full speed."
Perfection.
"Again, with power!"
Amazing. Yosho stood, shaken from his calm
demeanor into a state
of amazement. Ryoko noticed this and asked
if anything was wrong.
"No Ryoko, you have done well. Let me show you a new Kata."
Again, it was the same. After
performing the moves about a half
a dozen times, she had them
mastered.
Yosho showed her four Kata that evening, and had her repeat them
all in random order. There was no question. What
he had taken
decades to master, she had in a matter of minutes. (I
must speak
to Washuu about this.) "Excellent Ryoko, I think
I've never had
a better pupil."
"But I thought I was here to help you stay in top form?"
He quickly
answered, "Yes, but I want to fight someone who is well
trained
in my style."
She didn't seem satisfied with this answer,
but bowed and took her
leave of him.
Yosho saw this. (She
suspects something. I will have to be honest
with her about this
eventually.) Yosho was glad he could trust
Ryoko, especially with
this new ability to learn revealed. Soon,
they would have to have
a talk about that day, long
ago.
Maria
showed up around dinner time. Raoul usually mad dinner, but not
today
because he was entertaining a guest. They decided on ordering
pizza,
which Tenchi enjoyed. "This is much better that the pizza
they
have back home." During the meal, Raoul had Tenchi bring
up his girl
troubles to Maria. "So, you have two girls
fighting over you, huh? Do
you have a picture?" Tenchi pulled
out the photo from Washuu that he
kept very close. Fortunately, it
was a black and white photo. "Okay,
let me see...oh my!
Look at this honey!" Raoul sat closer to his
wife and his
eyes got big. "So, this is what the great Katsuhito
Masaki
looks like, I thought he would look older than that! Oh, and
those
girls are pretty too." Maria said,"Oh sure, I'm sure the
old man
was the first thing that caught your eye." Raoul
smirked,"You know I
only have eyes for you baby." She
elbowed him playfully in the ribs.
"Oh, be serious. Tell
me Tenchi, which of these are the two?" Tenchi
sighed, "The
ones surrounding me." She looked again. "Tell me
about
them." Tenchi considered what he could say, "Well,
first there's
Ryoko. She is a bit on the wild side, a little
mischievious, very open
and honest. She is a pretty tough, but she
has a soft side as well.
She's used to always be hanging all over
me, trying to seduce me..."
Maria cut him off,"Seduce
you? What do you mean?" Well, she is always
making passes at
me and trying to kiss me. She sneaks up behind me,
grabs me,
suggests we should go be alone somewhere."
Maria and Raoul were fascinated by this,"What do you do?"
"Well, I usually push her away, or Aeka shows up and they fight."
"Does Aeka ever make such advances?"
"No, Aeka is pretty
confident. She figures she'll get me in the end,
but she still
gets pretty jealous. She has a nasty temper when Ryoko
gets her
all riled up."
"So when Ryoko starts her advances,
Aeka starts a fight. How bad are
these fights?"
"Pretty bad."
"They yell really loud?"
"Well, it starts that way."
"They get physical?"
"You could say that."
"Who usually gets physical first?"
Tenchi never really considered this. He thought
back to the first time.
"Well, the first time Ryoko just
tried to get away, then only fought
back in self defense. The
second time it got physical, Aeka slapped
Ryoko in the face. Ryoko
was taunting her pretty bad though."
"There's a big difference between taunting and hitting Tenchi."
"Lately they have been better though."
"Tell me about Aeka."
"Well, she is very proper. Very well
mannered. She can be very nice.
She tries to be fair, even giving
Ryoko credit when she deserves it.
They would be friends if it
wasn't for the rivalry I think."
Maria thought for a moment. "What about their pasts, their families?"
Well,
I'll start with the easy one first,"Well Aeka comes from a
rich
family. They want her to come back, but she would rather stay
with me.
A man she loved and wanted to marry left her, and in her
search for him
she met me."
"And what about Ryoko?"
"Tenchi paused in thought, how do I even
begin to put this in Earthly
perspective, "Well...she has
had a tough life. She...lost her mother
when she was young
and...was raised by an abusive...uncle. One day
she ran away
and...well, she was in prison for a while. We gave her
a place
to stay."
Raoul, being a very perceptive person, knew
Tenchi to be holding something
back, but said nothing.
"So, how do you feel about Ryoko's past Tenchi?"
"Well, I
guess alot that happened to her was pretty bad. For what she has
been
through, she still turned out to have a good heart. I feel very
close
to her. I get mad at her antics, but I guess in the end it
is just her way
of expressing herself. I honestly think she
doesn't know any better, but
lately she has been behaving. I think
that spending time in a caring
household has done her alot of
good."
"It was very kind of your family to take her
in. What about Aeka, how do you
feel about her?"
"Well,
she is a good person at heart. She tries to do what she feels is
right.
Her temper is really something, but I think she has gotten
better since she
has been around too. She is so traditional and
formal. She has such high
expectations of me though."
"What kind of expectations?"
"Well, I think she wants me
to go into her family's business. I'm not sure
I want to though. I
don't know if I would like it in her...world."
"What does Ryoko expect of you?"
Tenchi paused in thought. "She
just wants my love, I guess. To be fair, I
think Aeka would give
up her position with her family to be with me."
"Which one in the photo is Ryoko?" Tenchi pointed.
Maria and Raoul talked quickly in Spanish for a bit.
Maria said, "Well, from what I've heard, I think I like Ryoko better."
With
that she changed the subject. Tenchi talked about his training
with
his grandfather with Raoul for a while. It started to get late,
and
Raoul said he had to get up early. Since Maria didn't have any
drinks
she would drive Tenchi back to her in-laws house.
On the drive
home, Tenchi was mostly silent. At Ernesto's house he got
out of
the car and turned to say goodnight. Maria said, "I think
you
should tell Ryoko how you really feel. I could tell from the
way you
talked about her." Tenchi thanked her, and went
inside. Mrs.
Fernandez was still up, "Oh Tenchi, come to the
kitchen, I just made
some tea!" He thanked her and sat in the
kitchen. "So, you gave
Ernesto quite a show today from what I
here. He said you gave him
his best fight ever." Tenchi
modestly said, "Not in empty hand Tia."
She just smiled,
"Well, you made him go to bed early tonight. Maybe
you should
do the same." Tenchi finished the tea, thanked her and
said
goodnight. He would try harder with the empty hand
tomorrow.
Ryoko
sat up on her rafter. She had the usual nightmares, but they
weren't
as intense. She actuallly slept through the night. The
reason she
woke up was the sounds of Sasami getting up to make
breakfast. She
floated down from her wooden bed to help and learn.
She found
that she was more focused on what was going on in front of
her.
Before, it was demanded a large amount of willpower to pay
attention
to what she was being shown and what she was doing. Even
then she
managed to be distracted by eating during the preparations.
Today
was different. Not only did she remember all that she was shown,
but
she didn't eat until it was done. Sasami would have worried about
her
friend, but Ryoko seemed to be in a decent mood.
At breakfast,
Aeka watched Ryoko suspiciously. Ryoko noticed, but didn't
let on.
She remembered her resolution to be nicer to Aeka. It turned
out
to be a quiet, peaceful, and boring breakfast.
Aeka was doing
some dusting and cleaning after breakfast while Ryoko
helped
Sasami clean up. (I wonder when she will drop this little
charade?
Why does she even expend the effort with Tenchi away...
unless?
Unless she really is changing?) Aeka found herself losing
confidence
and becoming unsettled again. Just then Ryoko came around
the
corner, "Need any help Aeka?" Aeka jumped like she had
been
caught doing something wrong. When she recovered she said,
"Yes,
thank you Ryoko. I'm going to be sweeping and mopping
soon, I need
to move some of the furniture to get the floor
underneath." Aeka
went to get a mop and broom. They were
going to start in the living
room. When Aeka returned she found
all the furniture and carpet...
gone? She heard noise outside and
saw that Ryoko had arranged it all
on the deck outside. (Well, I
guess her powers can be used for more
that just fighting after
all,) she grudgingly admitted to herself.
Thanks to Ryoko, what
would have taken all day only took a couple
hours. They finished
just in time for Ryoko to start helping make
lunch.
Katsuhito
Masaki (Yosho) decided to pay Washuu a visit in her lab. He
didn't
really like it in there, but he was making a special trip. She
was
Ryoko's mother after all. "Washuu, do you have some time."
She
looked at him in an odd way. She didn't know how to feel about
the man
before her. He had simultaneously helped and hurt her
daughter. "Sure,
what is it?" He related the amazing
learing potential she had displayed
the previous evening. Washuu
remembered the new readings on Ryoko.
"That only makes sense."
"Why is that?"
"Well,
because...SHE IS THE DAUGHTER OF THE GREATEST SCIENTIFIC
GENIUS
IN THE UNIVERSE!"
Yosho's face remained
passive. "Well, there is that. But she didn't show
the same
potential previous to last evening."
"Well, there
had been a block in her mind that discouraged learning. Even
with
that, she still had the ability. Somehow, the block went away
very
recently. I don't know how yet. I'm still going over the
data."
"She is learning new skills at an incredible rate."
"You have to remember, although she is my
daughter, I did engineer her. She
is a weapon as well. It was not
her main function, but Kagato made it to be.
I did it so that she
could protect herself and be independent."
Yosho
considered this. "There is another matter. What happened 700
years ago,
the whole incident. I have to make my peace with her. I
feel very badly about
it." He wanted to say more, but Washuu
held up her hand for him to stop.
(Ryoko?)
(Yes Mom?)
(How do yo feel about Yosho, and what happened long ago?)
A pause (He did what he had to do Mom, he was defending
his family. Besides,
because of it I am free of Kagato and I have
a love in my life. Why do you
ask?)
"Don't worry about it, she's over it. I think you should get over it to."
"But..."
"It's okay, she's
already made her peace with you. The cave was bad, but
being under
Kagato was far worse. Just let it go."
Katsuhito bowed to her, and left the lab.
Couldn't
sleep. Maybe it was still jet lag, maybe he was anxious
about
training tomorrow. Maybe it was...hell...it was Ryoko.
He knew, only
the gods know why he resisted it for so long, but
now he knew. (What time
is it back
there?)
Sasami
and Ryoko had just finished cleaning up. With nothing further to
do
until dinner preparations, they went to watch TV. They just
settled in to
watch a program when the phone rang. Ryoko phased
quickly to the phone and
picked it up, "Masaki
residence!"
He
felt his heart leap in his chest, it was her! (Oh, how do I start
this?
What do I say? Maybe should be like her and just say how I
feel?)
"Hello..."
He was tongue tied, speechless, dumbstruck...
"Hello...is anyone there?"
"Ryoko."
"Tenchi!
I miss you so much? Where are you? How is your trip so far? Do
you
miss
me?"
(Well,
I can simply answer her questions) "Yes, I miss you too. I'm in
the
United States. The trip is interesting, fun." He knew
that if he didn't say
it soon, the phone would be swarmed with
alien women soon, and he would have
to try again later. "Ryoko
listen...there's something I have to tell
you."
Sasami
heard Ryoko answer the phone, and it was...Tenchi! (I have to go
find
Aeka!) Aeka was outside weeding the flower beds surrounding
the house. Sasami
ran to her breathlessly,
"Aeka...Tenchi...phone!" Aeka jumped up
and
headed for the
door.
Aeka
saw her first, holding the phone handset with both hands to her
chest. She
was looking up, but her eyes were closed, she stood
very still. Were those tears?
Yes, she was crying! What did he
tell her? Aeka thought (Is he hurt? Is he
calling from the
hospital?) Then other thoughts surfaced, (Has he chosen? Did he
find
it easier to tell her on the phone?) She felt hopeful. But then she
thought
about Ryoko. That would be a really horrible way to be
told. She felt bad for
her former enemy. She and Sasami
respectfully kept their distance for a
bit.
"Ryoko! Ryoko! C'mon, say something!"
She
was so happy, she could just burst. She savored the moment, (This is
the best
thing that ever happened to me!) This was something she
would treasure forever.
She put the phone back to her ear, tears
of joy streaming down her face. In a voice
too low for the other
girls to hear, "Tenchi, I love you so
much..."
"Ryoko, listen...I do truly love you. Do me one small favor?"
"Yes Tenchi?"
"Don't tell anyone about this. Wait until I
get back. I want to tell Aeka in
person. It would be very cruel to
her to be told this
way."
Ryoko
was so happy, in such bliss, that she would have agreed to anything
her
Tenchi asked of her, "Yes Tenchi, I understand. I love
you." The other two
girls began to approach her, not having
overheard the conversation. Ryoko
phased away as Aeka took the
phone,
"Tenchi?"
What
do I say now? How do I explain this one. "Aeka, hi! How are
things back
home?"
"Well, everything is going
well. It has actually been peaceful. Ryoko and I are
actually
starting to get along."
"That's great Aeka, that was something I'd hoped for."
"How is your trip so far?"
"Well, it is very interesting. I'm learning
alot. I like the food
they have here. It's different."
"Tenchi, why was Ryoko upset?"
Uh..."I guess she was just so happy to hear from me."
Aeka considered this and said,
"Did you even say goodbye to her
when you left? I don't
remember seeing her that morning?"
Aeka seemed concerned
about Ryoko? "Well, I did. She was in the
lab with Washuu
that morning." Not a lie.
Aeka wanted to say more, but
she saw Sasami looking at her expectantly,
and said good bye and
handed the phone to Tenchi, "Hi Tenchi! We miss
you so much
around here! I'm going to go make some rice cakes and send
them to
you!"
Aeka walked off as her little sister chatted away.
Wondering what was up
with Ryoko.
When Aeka was out of
earshot she said to Tenchi, "I think Ryoko misses you
most of
all. You should have seen her crying..."
Ryoko was up
alright. She was flying through the air high above the
house,
circling at hundreds of miles an hour. She flew higher and
higher, happy.
Finally she had found happiness in her life. All
that pain and suffering
leading up to this moment was worth it.
Loved at last. She wasn't really
paying attention as her speed
approached Mach 1.
"...and Mihoshi and Ryoko are becoming really close. Ryoko is getting
really good in the
kitc...", there was a loud crack, like thunder, "wow,
I
think it is going to start raining here. Is it raining where you
are
Tenchi?"
Aeka was outside when she heard the sound
of thunder. She looked up at the
sky to see nothing but blue.
(That's
strange.)
Tenchi
said goodbye and hung up the phone. It was like a large weight
was
lifted off his shoulders. Unburdened, he was finally able to
drift off to
sleep.
Chapter 7
Kai and Morai were standing over the navigation console,
while discussing their
strategy. Kai was the most enthusiastic, as
this was his plan, "Okay, these
freighters always pass
through this part of the galaxy along their route. The
GP doesn't
have much of a presence here, only one officer from what I've
learned.
They'll be crammed full of all kinds of rare and valuable
gems and metals. If
we hit them here," he pointed at the
Sirius system, "we will be gone before anyone
could get in
our way." Morai had some doubt, "I don't like it. We will
be too
close to the restricted area. The system in there is under
the protection of
Jurai. I don't want to have them breathing down
our necks." Kai reassured him,
"It's not a big concern
of theirs, that planet is protected for sentimental reasons
only.
Besides, we'll be a few light years away." Morai wasn't fully
convinced,
but he agreed anyway. It was quite a fat target after
all. After going over
some of the tactics, they finalized their
plan, and prepared to bring the rest
of the gang up to speed on
their newest
venture.
Ryoko
sat in the bath, cursing softly. With a brush she was slowly and
painfully
working the knots out of her hair from her recent
supersonic dash across the sky.
Aeka showed up to take a bath as
well, and heard Ryoko grumbling. (Well, now this
is the Ryoko I'm
used to!) She thought with relief. "Mind if I join you?"
Ryoko
looked up and her angry expression softened a bit, "No,
come on in." She went
back to brushing. "Got some knots
I see, I have something for that." Aeka found
a bottle of
detangling conditioner and handed it to Ryoko. "Here try this."
She
looked at the bottle curiously, then rose out of the bath to
the little falls to
work the stuff into her hair. After a bit she
was back and tried her brush again,
which to her suprise didn't
hurt as much and soon she was knot free. "Thanks Aeka,
that
stuff is great." Her problem being solved, her mood improved
dramatically.
The princess looked at the pirates hair, and it
seemed to have lost its spiky look.
"I miss him too you know.
It's only been a couple days, but it seems much longer
than that."
Ryoko looked questioningly at Aeka. (She's opening up to me? The
first
time I ever opened up to her, she was awfully cruel.) Ryoko
replied, "You know
what they say, absence makes the heart
grow fonder." Aeka didn't know if she was
being taunted by
this comment or being set up. She decided to give Ryoko the
benefit
of the doubt. "Well, perhaps so. You know, Ryoko, Tenchi wished
that we
get along better, and it seems we have been doing that
somewhat. Perhaps we
should go into town together sometime."
Aeka had many reasons for asking this,
but mainly she was getting
bored, and after doing a little soul searching, she
realized that
Ryoko would be easier to deal with than Mihoshi. Ryoko felt
boredom
as well. She needed someone else to hang out with whenever
Mihoshi was working.
Although elated by Tenchi's declaration, she
did feel that things
were getting a little dull. "Alright,
sure. We don't get out much anyway."
With that she sat back
in the water and relaxed. One of the few senses not
dulled by
Kagato was her sense of temperature. He wanted her to be able to
feel
the heat caused by various weapons in battle, such as an
energy sword approaching
a blind spot. Because of this, the hot
bath was something she really enjoyed.
She actually dozed off a
bit, sitting there next to Aeka in the hot water.
Aeka had thought
an uncomfortable silence was developing between them when she
heard
Ryoko lightly
snoring.
Mihoshi
was cruising along the outer edge of the solar system on her
standard
patrol route. She monitored the standard galactic radio
traffic, and kept a
watch over her instruments for anything
unusual. Yukinojo was in top shape
after Washuu's last repairs.
Mihoshi was happy her ship could do almost
everything
automatically, so she could catch up on her reading. She was
deeply
engrossed in her latest manga when a warning sounded. She looked
up
and saw that someone had activated a distress beacon.
"Yukinojo! Assess
situation!" The robotic head appeared,
"Distress, source unknown. In region
of Sirius system bearing
345 mark 78." Mihoshi quickly brought the ship
about and
accelerated away at full power. Once established on her course
she
sent a message to the nearest station reporting what she
knew.
Kai
was grinning ear to ear, his plan was proceeding perfectly. The
pirate
fleet under his co-command consisted of 24 Kurami class
fighters. While not
the fastest or most powerful, when employed in
great numbers like this with
proper planning they were quite
lethal. The freighters had only a small
escort of four Kyudo class
space fighters. While very agile and heavily
armed, they didn't
have a good defensive shield. The freighters had some
armaments,
but they weren't very accurate. In the end, none of it amounted
to
much. Morai had taken 16 pirate fighters and hid behind a small
moon,
while Kai moved into a position to attack the caravan from
the side. From
extreme long range, Kai's group engaged the
freighters. The fighter
escorts immediately moved into a defensive
position between Kai's group and
the caravan. The Kyudo fighters
energy cannons replied in kind. One had
managed to score a hit on
one of the pirates, if only a minor one. The
damaged Kurami peeled
off from the rest, while the others moved to cover
it's retreat.
Sensing weakness, the caravan guard gave chase, pressing the
attack.
It was then that Morai struck them from the side. The escorts
never
knew what hit them. Then their two best shooters made several
high
speed passes at the freighters, using the Kurami fighters
main guns to
disable the weapons and life support units. Once
done, they sat back and
waited. Once in a while they would use
smaller weapons to prevent the
attempts by the freighter crews to
repair the damage. It was just a matter
of time until all aboard
expired, and they could tow the disabled ships
to their base for
pillaging. Or so they thought...
Yukinojo seemed to appear
from nowhere, it seemed to Kai and Morai. A comm
link was
established and a cute blonde appeared on their screen. Mihoshi
said
in a serious voice, "This is Detective First Class Mihoshi of
the
Galaxy Police. I order you to deactivate all weapons systems,
and assist
me in rescue operations. Cooperate and I promise to put
in a good word
at your trials." The pirate co-captians were
stunned, then they erupted
in laughter. "D-did you hear that
brother! Ha ha ha!" Morai was holding
his sides, laughing so
hard it hurt. "S-she, she, ha ha ha ha! Rescue!
Ha ha..."
Mihoshi frowned. Why weren't they taking her seriously?
"Comply,
or I will have to use force!" The two pirates continued
their
laughter. Morai calmed down first, and began working his
weapons console.
He began sending commands to the other ships in
his small fleet. Yukinojo
picked up the encoded message traffic
and his sensors detected the weapons
powering up. "Mihoshi,
they are preparing to attack." The GP officer had
a grim look
appear on her face, "Yukinojo, battle configuration!" She
took
manual control of the ship and attacked the pirates with
engines at full
power. The GP ship danced in and out of the Kurami
fighters, barely
avoiding several blasts. Mihoshi then realized
she'd bit off more than
she could chew. A blast connected and
rocked her ship. There had been
a time once when Mihoshi would
have panicked. Unfortunately for the
pirates, she had changed. In
the stress and fear of combat, she became
something else - someone
else. With a cackle of unholy glee, she began
to maneuver
agressively through the pirate fleet. With weapons blazing,
she
began picking them off one by one, making impossibly accurate
shots.
The comm link was still open, and Kai and Morai were
transfixed by what
they saw. Where they had first seen a harmless
looking babe, they now
saw evil incarnate. Mihoshi had an evil
expression on her face, and her
eyes - were they glowing green?
The co-captians watched as their small
fleet was brutally cut to
ribbons. "Morai, this cannot be the GP! They
would never
attack like this! It's against their procedures!" Across
the
comm link Morai was about to reply when the link was cut.
His
brother's ship was no more. Across the way, the freighter
crews looked
up from their repairs with awe, as one ship engaged
the pirates. Only
three were left now, and on the run. Morai was
running at full power
towards the restricted area. Mihoshi gave
chase, destroying the other
two and zeroing in on Morai. Feeling
desperate, he turned to the screen
with the fearsome woman on it,
"I surrender! I surrender!" He powered
down his weapons
systems.
"Mihoshi!
Mihoshi! You aren't following procedure! The suspect is
trying
to..."
"Shut up!"
"MIHOSHI!"
Yukinojo
almost understood what it must be like for a human to be in fear.
The
pirate on the comm screen was pleading for his life as the
possessed
blonde locked the targeting system on his fleeing ship.
In his programming,
he could take over control if the officer in
charge was incapacitated. Her
current condition seemed to count.
He deactivated the targeting system and
engaged a tractor beam,
locking onto the Kurami fighter.
Mihoshi was furious, her
weapon wasn't responding. "What the hell is this
shit!"
She kept stabbing at the firing control. "Mihoshi! Mihoshi!
You
are violating standing orders! You are not following
procedure! I must
take control!" When she finally realized
the ship wasn't responding, she
screamed in rage, then passed
out.
Tenchi
and Ernesto were at it again. Tenchi was slaughtering him.
After
relieving himself of his mental burden the night before, his
mind free to
focus fully on the task at hand, his sword technique
gained an edge. And
that little bit was enough to overcome the
older mans experience. After
about the tenth killing blow, Ernesto
called a halt. "Alright, alright!
Let me take a breather
here." Removing the kendo armor, he sat heavily on
a short
stool, finding his water bottle. Tossing another to the young man,
he
looked at him appraisingly. (What is different about him today?)
After
a short break, "Alright, let's see how much you
remember from yesterday."
It was time to go through the empty
hand portion of their sparring.
Tenchi fared better than
yesterday, but Ernesto still had the upper hand.
After getting
thrown to the ground once, Tenchi actually managed to put
his
opponent down. In the end, Ernesto seemed to inflict more pain
than
he received. After a rest, "Well, it would seem that we
should work on
your weaponless fighting for the rest of your time
here. It's obvious
that I have nothing more to show you in sword
fighting." They stood and
bowed to each other. They stopped
for some Chinese take-out on the way back
to Ernesto's house. They
ate together before Ernesto went off to work,
leaving Tenchi with
the house to himself again. He relaxed in the shade of
the back
yard for a bit, thinking. (I love Ryoko, I really do. First
problem
solved. Now the second problem...telling Aeka.) This
didn't seem to
weigh on him as heavily. He knew who he was in love
with, his course of action
was clear now. Just how was he to say
it? At least he'd have Raoul and Maria
to talk to tonight. After
relaxing for a bit he got up and practiced some
of the new empty
hand kata he'd been taught. An hour of practice later he
hopped in
the shower and got ready for his visit with Raoul.
Raoul
picked him up and drove to his apartment. "I'm making dinner
tonight
Tenchi. I hope you like lasagne!" Tenchi relaxed on
the couch with a beer
while Raoul worked on dinner. (I'm starting
to like having a drink while
relaxing, I guess Ryoko has affected
me more ways than one.) "I've never
had that before. How was
work?"
"We're not too busy this week. The boss was
showing me how to operate some
of the more advanced machines after
I'd finished this one order. It was
a pretty easy day. How did you
do with Papa today?"
"Well, I think he got even with
me in empty hand for the beating I gave
him with the sword
today."
Raoul turned towards Tenchi with raised eyebrows, "The beating?"
"Yeah, I felt pretty good today
with the sword. I guess I had a lot
on my mind yesterday, but
today I was more focused and gave a much
better show."
Raoul
wasn't convinced, "You'll have to show me sometime. Maybe
Papa
is getting soft in his old age?"
Maria got home just after dinner was finished.
"Hello Tenchi. How badly were you beaten up today?"
Tenchi smiled, "Not as
badly as yesterday. Oh, and I took your advice
last
night."
"Hmm?"
"I called Ryoko and told her how I felt."
Maria smiled, "So what did she say?"
"Well, at first she was speechless, I'm pretty
sure she was crying. She
told me she loved me too, although it's
never really been a secret."
"Getting a bit of a big ego are we Tenchi?"
Raoul stepped in, "I think so,
he was bragging earlier about beating Papa
up with the sword
today."
"No way, c'mon Tenchi."
Tenchi
raised both his hands in front of him, "No, really! You should
see
the way she acts towards me back home. As for sparring today,
I did eat a
bit of the floor today in empty hand!"
"We're just messing with you Tenchi, relax. Have another beer."
Maria asked about Aeka.
"Well, I didn't tell her. I didn't
think it would be the best time. I did
want to ask you how I
should tell her when I get back."
Maria thought for a
bit, "You should tell her how you feel about her first.
Be
honest, then explain how you feel about Ryoko. It's the best
way."
"Well, I'm not sure of the best way to word it."
"Only you can do that. It'll work out alright.
She has alot going for her
back home. She'll get over it."
"I hope so."
Raoul jumped in again, "See, I told you he
was an egomaniac. You think some
rich girl wouldn't get over
you?"
"Hey!"
Raoul just grinned, "Touchy subject, huh?"
Mihoshi
woke up. She felt groggy, and had a migrane. She slowly opened
her
eyes. She was in an unfamiliar room, at first glance she could
tell
it was an infirmary. There was an odd burnt smell in the air.
She could
hear some activity behind her so she rolled over. The
scene before her
was frantic. Every bed (and a large part of the
floor) was occupied with
injured people. A few doctors and nurses
worked in a frenzy, treating
the victims of the pirate attack. She
sat up slowly, wondering what had
happened (The last thing I
remember was flying into the fleet...) One of
the nurses came
over to her, "How do you feel?" Mihoshi looked into
her
eyes and saw a mix of awe, and fear? "My head hurts is
all, what's going
on?" The nurse gave her something for the
headache, "I have much to do,
no time to talk..."
"Let me help, you seem really really busy."
The nurse was hesitant, then "Alright, come with me."
Part of her
training at the GP academy included basic and advanced first
aid,
so she turned out to be a big help to the overworked medical
staff.
She got alot of the same looks from some of the injured
that the nurse
had given her.
Several hours later, when
everyone had been attended to, Mihoshi felt
dead on her feet. The
nurse came back over to her, "Thank you for
your help, c'mon
let's find somewhere for you to rest." She led
Mihoshi to the
ships quarters and an empty bunk. "Rest here as long
as you
need to. My names Nina. If you need anything, just call the
infirmary
and ask for me." Nina went back to work, and Mihoshi lay
down.
Soon she fell into a deep, dreamless
sleep.
Washuu
was running new simulations based on her latest data from Ryoko.
The
little scientist was in a good mood. It took a few thousand
years,
but it finally happened. Her daughter was happy. She hadn't
heard
what Tenchi said to her, but when she sensed an unusual
surge of energy,
she opened up her mind link and the feelings that
poured through...
It brought tears to her eyes, it was so
wonderful. Now on to business.
The more she looked at the data,
the more it seemed that she should not
mess with the psychological
blocks at all. Based on her latest set of
data and some long term
projections - they would work themselves out on
their own. It
might take a while, but some things are done best when
done
slowly. The physiological blocks were another matter. She had the
fix
engineered already. It would be finished tomorrow. All she needed
was
Ryoko's go ahead after
that.
Ryoko
phased up to the shrine to find Katsuhito waiting for her. Not
saying
a word, he tossed her a bokken and attacked. He kept his
attacks
simple, as he would with a beginner. He kept the pace of
his attacks
slow at first, then sped up as she got her rhythm. As
he pressed harder,
she began using her old techniques. He called a
halt, "Ryoko, I want you
to only use what I have shown you
when sparring." Ryoko grinned a bit,
"What's the matter,
can't keep up anymore?" He ignored the taunt, "You
must
focus on the new techniques. The training is more effective that
way.
Let us begin again." They fought back and forth across the
small
courtyard. Yosho held back so that she would remain true to
form. When
she seemed to begin reverting to her old ways, he would
back off a bit.
He tried to restrict himself to only the moves he
had shown her. The
fight became more of a drill eventually, but
she was learning. Yosho
called a halt and had Ryoko demonstrate
the kata and techniques he had
shown her so far. After running
through the whole series flawlessly,
she taught her two more kata,
and some three step moves. Then they
moved on to some meditation.
Ryoko quickly went into a deep level of
consciousness. She loved
the peace and tranquility of it. Yosho arose
from his own
meditation, and noticed Ryoko's gems glowing softly. The
look on
her face mirrored pure serenity. It seemd a shame to disturb
her,
as he had never seen Ryoko so peaceful before. Clapping his
hands
twice, she opened her eyes. "Another good performance
today Ryoko."
She got up and they bowed. Ryoko decided to
walk back to the house and
take a look at some of those flowers
she had seen on the way up the
other
day.
Tenchi
woke up a feeling a little woozy (ug..I think I had one too
many
beers last night. Now Ryoko and I have something else in
common.) He
got dressed and stumbled down the steps. Ernesto had
his morning tea
and paper in front of him. Mrs. Fernandez was
still there. "Good
morning Tenchi! I'm glad you're up, I just
finished making breakfast."
Tenchi smiled gratefully as she
set two plates before him. One plate
had some scrambled eggs,
toast, sausage and homefries. The other was
all pancakes. "Eat
up Tenchi, you'll need lots of energy today!" Not
being fully
awake, this comment went in one ear and out the other. He
was
enjoying the food too much to notice the sly grin Ernesto
was
watching him with.
Later on they pulled up to the
warehouse/dojo. They began with a long
period of meditation.
Afterwards, Tenchi was suprised to see Ernesto
breaking out the
kendo armor, even more so by the fact that he had three
sets out.
Just then Raoul showed up. Tenchi looked rapidly back and
forth
between the two men and the three sets of armor as realization
dawned
on him. "Hey Tenchi, since it isn't very busy at work this
week
I took a couple days off. Time I got to see what you are made
of!"
Ernesto was all suited up, "Well, since I don't
seem to provide much of
a challenge anymore, maybe you are better
suited to a two on one fight?"
Tenchi inwardly groaned, his head was not up to this.
The staccato clack of bamboo
banging together increased Tenchi's headache
as he fought off the
two men. While Ernesto used solid technique and
tricks, Raoul just
attacked with energy and enthusiasm. It really kept
him off
balance as they circled and struck. Tenchi managed to get in a
couple
good strikes on Raoul, at the price of one good whack on the
head
from Ernesto. Eventually, Tenchi wound up getting bashed
consistently.
It seemed like a good time to call a halt, so they
stripped out of the
armor and drank large amounts of water. Raoul
praised Tenchi, "I have
to say, I was a little skeptical last
night. Looking back you were
actually kind of modest about your
ability. I wouldn't want to fight
you alone for sure!"
Tenchis head hurt too much to do much more than
smile and nod.
(They ganged up on me when I had a hangover.) Still,
he realized
that for his training to be effective it had to be more
challenging,
and they had just pushed him to his limit. After a rest,
Raoul sat
back and watched as his Father made short work of Tenchi in
empty
hand fighting. Afterwards, they all did kata together. Ernesto
showed
Tenchi a new one which he practiced a while on his own. It was
a
tough day, but he learned alot (especially to lay off the beer
while
in
training!)
Mihoshi
woke up feeling much better. She found a comm console and
called
down to the infirmary asking for Nina. She came back to the
sleeping
quarters and took Mihoshi down to the mess area to get her
something
to eat, "Sorry that all we have are these packaged meals.
Those
attacks really messed up our facilities." Mihoshi didn't mind
at
all, but was curious about something, "Why are people looking
at
me all funny? Did I do something wrong?" Nina hesitated
before she
answered. "Well, it was the way you handled those
pirates. It was
...I don't know what to say. They were going to
kill us all, so I
shouldn't feel bad for them. But when you were
blowing up the fleeing
ones, who were trying to
surrender...begging you. You just laughed
at them...and
killed them." Mihoshi looked at her in disbelief. "Me?
I...I
don't remember that." Nina just looked down at her
breakfast.
After a while she said, "Have you seen alot of
action on the job? Maybe
too much? Maybe it's starting to get to
you?"
"I don't know, maybe."
Some of the
crew found out who she was and expressed thier graditude.
Eventually
she was summoned by the caravan commander.
"Detective
Mihoshi, it would seem that I owe you one. Please, have a
seat."
The commander was an older man, with long grey hair and a
beard,
and piercing blue eyes. A scar ran diagonally across his face.
"I
know a fellow veteran when I see one, but I never saw one so
pretty
as this." Mihoshi blushed at the compliment. "You
really gave those
bastards what they deserved. The remaining one
has been placed in the
holding cell aboard your ship. I have to
ask you though, where did
you learn to fight like that? They don't
teach that at the GP academy
now do they?" Mihoshi didn't
know what to say, as she didn't remember
the fight. "Well, I
have seen some combat in my career. Also, a friend
of mine is a
reformed space pirate. She gave me some pointers once."
"Well,
take my advice. Lose that prisoner of yours before you get back
to
the station."
"Lose him? Why would I do that? I'd never let him get away!"
"Uh...I mean you might be
better off if he was never seen again. None
of my people would
ever bring the details of this incident to the GP, but
if that
pirate ever lodged a complaint and my people had to
testify..."
Mihoshi was perplexed. If only she could
remember what happened. Maybe
it would make sense then. "Thank
you Captain. I'll stay with your
caravan to escort you to a safe
space port."
Back aboard the Yukinojo, Mihoshi settled
into the bridge. The ships
computer saw that she was acting
normally. "Yukinojo, bring up a recording
of the recent
combat action."
Mihoshi watched herself destroy a pirate
fleet through the eye of the gun
cameras. "Show me the video
feed from the bridge."
The scene played itself out as
Mihoshi watched in fear. She saw herself
possessed, grinning
evilly as she killed the pirates one by one. She
heard the
begging, the screams. It was horrifying.
In a whisper, "That wasn't me...couldn't have been me..."
But it was.
Mihoshi was very frightened. How could she have been so out
of
control? The captains words came back to her now (Lose that
prisoner
of yours...). If the GP ever got word of this, she
would be off the
force. Possibly even charged as a criminal! She
didn't know what to do.
(Well, I have a few days to think about
this until I escort these freighters
to a safe port.) She decided
to check on her prisoner.
Morai was not very happy. His
brother was dead, his fleet was gone. To top
it off he was stuck
in a tiny holding cell of a GP patrol ship and nobody
had come to
feed him for a whole day. "Well, I guess it could be worse.
SHE
isn't around." Just then Mihoshi showed up. Morai saw her
and with a yelp
got as far away from the door of his cell as he
could, cowering against the
wall. She read him his rights.
Figuring he hadn't eaten in a while, she
worked her control cube
until a package of food entered his cell from a slot
in the wall.
He made no move to take it, but continued to watch her with
fear
in his eyes.
(I'll have to talk to Washuu about this. Maybe
she can find out why I can't
remember, and what happened to me.)
She returned to the bridge, and prepared
to escort the freighters.
Chapter 8
Ernesto had no appointments or work that day, so he took
Tenchi by his office
on the way back from the dojo. His "office"
was nothing more than a two bay
garage with a room attached where
he kept his desk and files. Tenchi had a bit
of a headache from
the pounding he took. Raoul left the two of them to go see
Maria
for lunch.
"Ernesto, do you have any aspirin? My head is killing me."
With a bit of concern showing on his face,
Ernesto nodded. "We should have lunch,
it's no good to take
that stuff on an empty stomach. Just give me a minute to
check my
messages."
Tenchi wandered about the small shop while
waiting, looking at the ladders, tools,
and supplies. He
recognized some from the few times he had gone to new
construction
sites with his father. He began to wonder why Ernesto
didn't teach full time. Then
he thought about his own future.
(What will I do when school is over? College?
Then what?) Ernesto
caught his attention and they went off in search of lunch.
They
pulled up to a small Japanese restaurant. After they were seated and
had their
orders taken Tenchi asked Ernesto about his job. What he
seemed to enjoy was the
transformation from new to old. What he
really liked was gutting an old house and
rebuilding the inside to
look brand new. Lunch arrived and Tenchi took his aspirin.
When
finished eating, Tenchi had a few more questions
"When did you decide you wanted to do this type of work?"
"Well,
when I was in the military I worked in a engineering unit that
specialized
in construction. When I got out I wanted to start my
own dojo. I have been into
the martial arts since I was eight
years old, and it was my dream for years to
start my own school.
Since I needed money to open a school, I went back into
construction.
When I first started my school, I taught part time because I
still
needed the money from my other work. After a while, my
school grew to the point
where it would be self sustaining, and I
quit the construction job. Eventually,
I found that I missed the
other work, and started my own business in construction.
Over
time, I found I enjoyed the construction work more than the teaching,
plus
there was a growing demand for my work."
"I
hope I can find something I enjoy like that. Did you ever get
homesick while
you were in the military?"
"Sometimes. Are you feeling homesick?"
"A little."
The
ambiance of the restaurant had Tenchi thinking of home. On the way
back to
Ernesto's house, his thoughts drifted to Ryoko. Like
Ryoko, once the thoughts
were in his head they wouldn't let go.
Since he was no longer in denial, he
found that he really missed
her. All the hugs out of nowhere, waking up to
see her over his
bed in the morning, the way she fought over him. It all seemed
so
endearing now. He wondered what she was doing now. Looking at his
watch,
he figured she was sleeping. Tenchi felt a little tired
himself and figured he
would take a nap once they got
back.
Mihoshi
departed the spaceport at Rendeverez after making sure the
caravan
ships had all docked safely. She didn't want to hang
around for long because
she didn't want to talk to the local GP
liaison. Once she had her course for
home established, she turned
to the quandary at hand. (What do I do? If I
take this pirate to a
GP station I could lose my job. But it is my job to
turn him over!
How would I explain myself? I need to go over the
regulations.
There's got to be an answer in there. I need to talk
to Ryoko, she will know
what to do!) With that last thought, she
felt a little
better.
Tenchi
woke up on Ernesto's couch where he had passed out after getting
back
from lunch. He could smell appetizing odors wafting from the
kitchen, and
made his way over to the dining area. Ernesto, Raoul,
Maria, and Tia were
all there having a conversation not in
Japanese. Raoul was the first to
spot him, "Well, I'm glad to
see you up. I was worried we had been too
much for you
today."
"Well, it was good training. I guess I have
more of the same in store for
tomorrow?"
Ernesto
answered that one, "Pretty much, just make sure you get a good
nights
rest. We only have two more days. We have to make the most
of it."
After another wonderful dinner Tenchi excused
himself and went to his room.
He thought about fighting two people
simultaneously. His thoughts went to
some of his Grandfathers
Aikido lessons. Settling into the lotus position,
he began to
meditate, preparing himself for the battle
tomorrow.
Night
fell across the city. Between the brightly lit streets and the
shadows
people walked, oblivious to the dark shadow moving across
the sky. Had anyone
looked up, all they would have seen was stars
appearing and disappearing in
a sinister outline. Not a sound
marked it's passage as the shape stealthfully
crossed Tokyo.
Slowly, it came to a halt, hovering over a darkened empty
alleyway.
Two figures appeared, then moved quietly out of the alley onto
the
sidewalk. The shape overhead began moving back the way it had
come, gradually
accelerating until it was beyond the horizon. The
figures whispered quietly
amongst themselves, not wanting to draw
any attention to themselves. Due to
their appearance, attention
was inevitable.
"I don't know how you talked me into
this. Here I am stalking around these
dark streets and alleyways
like a common thief!"
"Relax princess, would you have rather taken the train?"
"Well, I suppose not..."
"Well, we couldn't just teleport onto the main street now could we?"
Aeka and Ryoko walked into the
light of a main street, and caught the eyes of
many men. They wore
matching sequin dresses, Ryoko's was blue and Aekas was
purple.
The skirt of each stopped just above the knee, the neckline was
a
compromise between Ryoko's immodesty and Aeka's modesty, and
they were both
sleeveless. Ryoko wore a matching necklace and
bracelets made of gold and
rubies that served to both hide and
complement the red gems on her neck and
wrists. Aeka wore a
similar set made of diamonds and platinum. The overall
effect was
stunning. They made their way to a popular nightclub that had
dancing
and karaoke. It was a girls night out, and they both planned
on
having fun. They were almost to the club when they saw the
line. The club
was popular indeed.
"What do we do now? We'll be in that line all night from the look of it."
"C'mon, I've got an idea!"
Ryoko grabbed Aeka by the hand and
walked past everyone to the front of the line.
Two large men stood
at the entrance, collecting the cover charge.
"Aeka, trust me on this. Follow my act and we'll get right in!"
Still
holding her by the hand, Ryoko led them to the door, swinging her
hips
suggestively while they walked. They stopped before the
bouncers. Ryoko got
behind Aeka and wrapped her arms around her
waist, resting her chin on Aeka's
shoulder. Aeka stiffened in
shock at the sudden closeness of the space pirate.
Ryoko felt this
and whispered, "Relax, it's just an act - it'll be over in
a
minute." To the bouncers, now that she had their full
attention, "Hello boys,
mind if I sneak in here with my
girl?" She then licked her lips and ran a hand
down the side
of Aeka's leg, causing her to tense even more as her eyes grew
as
big as saucers. The doormen were dumbstruck for a moment, then one of
them
recovered and waved them in with a smile.
Once inside,
Aeka shook off Ryoko's hand in disgust, "How dare you! I
can't
believe you sometimes..."
Ryoko cut her off,
"Look, we didn't wait in line, and it didn't even cost
us
anything to get in! It was just an act - it worked didn't
it?"
Aeka calmed a bit, but was still a little flustered.
"Alright, but warn me
a little more before you pull something
like that."
Ryoko just smiled as they made their way to
the bar. Many pairs of male eyes
tracked their progress. Aeka was
becoming very self-conscious as she felt
the pressure of all the
gazes. When she asked Ryoko about going into town
with her, she
hadn't considered a trip like this.
Ryoko didn't mind the
attention. In the back of her mind she had an idea to
try to find
a guy that Aeka might like. She certainly had the attention
of
enough. (Maybe after a couple of drinks she can relax.) She got
the attention
of the bartender, "Could we get a strawberry
daquari and a long island ice tea?"
The bartender smiled at
the ladies appreciatively before getting the drinks.
When he
returned, Ryoko slipped him a 5000 yen note, "Make sure you keep
those
drinks coming, okay?" Aeka cautiously sipped hers, then
smiled and took a big
drink through the straw.
"Thank you, Ryoko. This is quite good."
(And they'll sneak up on you too Princess!)
Ryoko took hers in one gulp and slammed her
glass down on the bar for a refill.
She scanned the room for
likely men for Aeka. (Nope...nope...nope...maybe,
...oh,
he's too into himself...that one looks gay...nope...ah
ha!)
Ryoko spotted a pair of guys at the table. They looked
like Westerners. Hopefully
they spoke Japanese. She looked over at
Aeka. She sat facing the bar, and only had
eyes for her drink -
which was almost gone. She turned to the two at the table
again.
One had long blond hair, the other had short dark hair. They were
having a
conversation. Using her incredibly sharp hearing, Ryoko
listened in.
The blond spoke first, "Look man, I drag you
all the way into Tokyo and all you do
is sit there! Go ask one of
these girls to dance!"
The dark haired guy replied, "I would Greg, but I can't dance worth a damn!"
"It doesn't matter Joey! Just get out there and move with the music. Here, watch!"
Greg the blond got up and approached a girl
and they talked briefly, then proceeded
to the dance floor.
Joey the dark haired guy watched, sighed, and returned to his drink.
(Another terminally shy Tenchi type guy. Perfect for Aeka!)
"Hey Princess, let's go dance."
"I don't think I want to dance with you after that incident at the door."
Two more drinks arrived, and Ryoko gulped hers
down quickly as Aeka sipped
at hers. The barkeep noticed Ryoko's
trend and quickly brought another
one as she slipped him another
5000 yen note. She put part one of her plan
into effect. "Hey,
we can go ask that guy over there to dance." She
motioned to
Joey the dark haired one. Aeka considered him for a moment.
He
seemed non-threatening to her. (Well, I haven't been out dancing
in
700 years after all.) "Alright, but let me finish my drink
here first."
Ryoko was on her seventh drink while Aeka
was finishing her first. "Ryoko,
don't you think you need to
take it easy on the alcohol?" Ryoko just
laughed. "I'll
be just fine, these drinks aren't that strong," she lied.
"And
I don't mean to pry, but where did you get all this money
from?"
Ryoko winked and said, "Well, the first Bank of
Jurai seemed to have some
extra cash for the taking." Aeka
sprayed her drink out, "WHAT!"
"Just kidding,
jeeze! My mom just happens to be very wealthy. I guess all
that
time in the lab isn't a big waste."
Aeka calmed a bit.
Finishing her drink at the same time as Aeka, they went
over to go
see Joey. "Hi there!" said Ryoko. Joey looked up in
suprise,
then his eyes got really big. "Me and my friend here
would like to dance,
care to join us?" Joey just nodded, and
Ryoko took his hand and Aeka's
and led them to the dance floor.
Aeka had attended several balls at the
Royal Court of Jurai, and
had formal dance lessons. She was able to
quickly improvise and
adapt what she knew to match what others on the
floor around them
were doing. Ryoko was just a natural, and found herself
moving
with the beat of the music. Joey couldn't follow Ryoko's lead, so
he
tried to keep up with Aeka. He couldn't believe his dumb luck.
(What
did I do to deserve this? Two gorgeous women come outta
nowhere and ask
ME to dance?) Ryoko noticed the guy paying more
attention to Aeka, and
inwardly smiled.
Greg the blond
couldn't believe his eyes. Here was his bud Joey dancing
with the
two hottest women in the club? How'd that happen? He thanked
the
girl he had been dancing with and moved towards his friend.
Ryoko
saw the blond approaching, and starting thinking how best to
run
things tonight. Greg got her attention and motioned for her to
dance
with him. She turned to him and they danced together. (He's
pretty
good) Ryoko thought. Joey seemed to have gotten his rhythm
with Aeka,
despite his misgivings about his dancing ability. After
a couple songs,
they all returned to the same table, Joey sitting
next to Aeka and Ryoko
with Greg. Ryoko waved to the bartender and
he got a waitress to take
their order. "This one's on me
boys, what'll you have?"
Joey said, "I'll just have a coke, I'm driving" Greg said the same.
Aeka was thirsty from dancing, and was quickly into her third daquari.
"So what brings you guys to Japan?" Ryoko asked.
"Well,
we kind of live here." Joey answered. "We both teach
English
actually." Greg kicked him under the table. Joey
looked at Greg angrily,
remembering suddenly his friends advice
not to mention that.
"Really? Where did you learn Japanese so well?" Ryoko asked.
Greg answered, "Well,
I was a military brat. My Dad was stationed here
for a long time
when he was in the US Air Force. I picked the language
up quickly
because I took classes and hung around off base alot. What
brings
you two to Japan?"
Aeka answered, "All our friends and family live here, it's home to us."
Joey asked, "So what do you girls do for a living?"
"Oh, we don't have to work, our families are rich." Ryoko said.
It was
Aeka's turn to kick Ryoko under the table. Wanting to change
the
subject, Aeka turned to Joey, "When did you first arrive
in Japan?"
"Well, I joined the Marines when I was
seventeen and they shipped me
off to Okinawa..."
Joey
continued on with his story with Aeka listening. Ryoko turned to
Greg
and whispered in his ear, "I'm trying to set my friend up
with
someone, since I've already got a boyfriend. Think you can
lend me a
hand here?" Greg looked at her, and winked
conspiratorially. Ryoko
waved to a server, and motioned for
another round. Then she went
with Greg back to the dance floor,
leaving Aeka and Joey alone.
(He seems like a nice man. Kind
of like Tenchi. He doesn't have noble
blood though. Oh how I miss
Tenchi! The more he reminds me of him the
more I miss Tenchi.)
Aeka thought.
"...and after my second tour in the
military I decided to come back
here. Teaching English can be fun.
So are you two really rich or are
you just pulling our
legs?"
Aeka laughed nervously "Well, Ryoko tends to exaggerate!"
Joey relaxed a little, "So what do you like to do? You have any hobbies?"
Aeka thought for a
while, (Do I?) "Well, I like to work on the garden around
the
house. It's more like housework than a hobby, but I enjoy it.
How
about you?"
"Well, I really enjoy the martial arts..."
Ryoko looked over from the dance floor to
the couple at the table. They
seemed to be having a good
conversation. Time for some game playing.
"Say Greg, I'm
going to dance with Joey for a bit. Keep Aeka company
would you?"
Greg nodded and they headed to the table.
The two were deep in
conversation when Ryoko slid into the booth next to
Joey and
wrapped her arms around his neck. Joey tensed up and Ryoko
cooed
into his ear, "C'mon and dance with me now. Don't let Aeka
have
you all to herself."
"Really Ryoko, do you have to be so rude and interrupt!"
"Let's go Joey!"
Suprised at her strength, Joey was reluctantly dragged
out to the
dance floor.
"She's really something, isn't she?" Greg asked Aeka.
"She is SOMETHING all right!" Aeka huffed.
(Wow, Ryoko sure knows her friend well to be able to
press her buttons like
that. What a player!)
Joey danced
half heartedly with Ryoko, and quickly returned to the table
when
the song was over.
Aeka was glad to see Joey return. She
didn't enjoy Greg's company as much.
Ryoko saw this, and ordered
some more drinks. The DJ annouced that the
karaoke contest would
begin soon. "Hey guys, we have to enter! Aeka, lets
show
everyone what we can do!" Aeka had loosened up after her third
drink
and was working on her forth. "Will you be singing too
Joey-sama?" Ryoko
raised her eyebrows at Aeka's form of
address. "Uh...yeah, sure!"
"Very well, yes Ryoko, let's do it!"
They looked over the song list.
Ryoko got that up to no good gleam in her
eye, "Joey, what
song would you like me to sing for you?" Aeka looked
annoyed
at her again. "Just decide for yourself Ryoko!"
Eventually
they wrote down the songs they wanted to do and handed it in to
the
DJ. The contest began and the four chatted quietly amongst
themselves
while listening to some of the singers. A few were
decent, but many tried
very hard to be - causing a few people
around the bar to wince painfully.
Of the four, Greg went first -
with a not too awful attempt at singing
Pink by Aerosmith. Soon
Joey was up, doing a good job at She talks to
Angels by the Black
Crowes. He was rewarded with a bit of applause, and
an appeciative
smile from Aeka. She was up next, singing the LeAnn Rimes
version
of Unchained Melody. Her singing was wonderful, and she held
the
attention of the whole bar for the duration. She couldn't hit
some of the
high notes though, but improvised enough that nobody
cared. She finished
up to a great many cheers, whistles and
applause. She took a bow before
leaving the stage. Ryoko was
absent from the table when she got back.
After a few more singers,
Ryoko still hadn't returned. Aeka began to
get a little nervous.
She was about to excuse herself to look for the
ex-pirate when the
DJ called for her turn.
Suddenly, all the lights in the club
went out, plunging everyone into
darkness. Then three spotlights
focused on the stage to reveal...
Ryoko of course! She had
changed into a very tight revealing outfit.
The music began -
Oops, I did it again by Brittany Spears. From the
look of it,
Ryoko must have studied the artists dance moves, because
for those
few minutes on stage - she WAS Brittany Spears. Everyone
went
wild, as Ryoko danced across the stage. Even Aeka was impressed.
At
the end of the song, the DJ fired off some smoke cannons for
effect.
When the smoke cleared, Ryoko was gone. After a moment of
stunned
silence the crowd erupted into wild cheers.
There
were still several contestants to go, but it seemed the winner
had
already been chosen. Ryoko appeared at the table about ten
minutes
after her performance. She was back in the blue dress.
Greg and Joey
sat in awe of her, making Aeka just a little
jealous. Soon the contest
was over, and all eyes were on their
table. The DJ called out for both
Ryoko and Aeka. Ryoko had a big
grin on her face and was rubbing her
hands together in
anticipation. First prize was two tickets to the
Tokyo Disneyland
Resort. Second prize was dinner for two at one of the
best
restaurants in town. Everyone cheered when Ryoko was awarded
first
place. She bowed dramatically to the crowd many times. Aeka was
not
happy with being second place, but at least Ryoko shared the
spotlight
with her.
The dance floor opened up again. Aeka
was on her fifth drink, while Ryoko
was into the double digits.
Joey asked Aeka to dance, and led her away
from the table. Ryoko
and Greg joined them. After a fast song, the DJ
annouced it was
time to slow it down. Ryoko danced with Greg long enough
to make
sure that Joey had Aeka's attention, and quietly went back to
the
table. Greg asked her, "Are you sure you are serious with
someone? Go
out with me sometime, I promise you'll enjoy
yourself." Ryoko turned to
give him a look, and that look for
some reason chilled him to his core.
"I'm sure." Then
seeing Greg's expression of confused apprehension, "We
can be
friends though." After that 'look' Greg wasn't sure he
wanted
even that now, wondering why he was suddenly frightened of
her. "Uh, okay."
Ryoko flashed him a smile, "I need
your help getting those two together.
I'll need all the help I can
get." Greg nodded, not seeming very happy.
"I'll tell
you what, if we are successful, I'll introduce you to a friend
of
mine you might like!" Imagining what her friend looked like,
Greg
shook off the lingering fear and nodded
enthusiastically.
Ryoko looked back to the dance floor as the
second slow song started.
Joey and Aeka continued dancing, much to
Ryoko's delight. "Hey Greg,
you got a phone number or
something? I think those two are too shy
to ask each other."
Greg actually had a business card, which he handed
over. "You
two live near each other?" Greg nodded, "Yes, we live
in
the suburbs to the southwest."
Joey and Aeka
returned after the last slow song. They talked for a bit
more when
Ryoko excused herself to use the ladies room, with Aeka in
tow.
"So what do you think?"
Aeka looked questioningly, her wits dulled slightly by all the alcohol.
"You want to hang out with those guys again sometime?"
"Oh, well...you see...um..."
Ryoko got frustrated, but
didn't let it show, "You obviously like the guy!
It doesn't
hurt to make friends, does it?"
"No...I suppose not..."
"Well then, go ask for his number or
something. We have to use these
tickets we won. Maybe they would
like to go along?"
Aeka's expression slowly shifted from
indecision to resolve, "Alright
then, Joey seems nice enough,
but just friends!"
Ryoko grinned. They headed back to the
table. Upon request Joey
hastily scribbled his number on a
matchbook and handed it to Aeka.
Greg had regained a bit of his
bravado, "So ladies, can we offer
you a ride home?" Aeka
started with, "No, we were just..." but
Ryoko cut her
off, "Sure, take us to the train station!"
Ryoko
screamed with delight from her perch on the back of the sleek
Suzuki
sportbike as Greg weaved through the city traffic at a
breakneck
pace. Joey was not as daring, mainly because he didn't
want to
terrify Aeka on her first motorcycle ride. She might not
want to
get back on if he did. At the train station, Ryoko leapt
off the back
shouting a happy whoop. A couple minutes later, Joey
and Aeka arrived.
Ryoko jumped up and down shouting, "Beat
ya! Beat ya!"
"Ryoko, really!" but she wasn't
mad. She enjoyed the ride on the
primitive machine too much to get
angry at Ryoko's antics. They
waved goodbye as the two men
departed on the high performance bikes.
(Come, Ryo-ohki.) "So, did you have a good time tonight Princess?"
"Well,
at first I wasn't sure this was such a good idea. Although I
must
admit I rather enjoyed myself tonight."
"We sure showed them all with the Karaoke, didn't we?"
Aeka smiled, "Yes, indeed we did."
Soon they were
enveloped in bright light, as Ryo-ohki beamed them off
the empty
train
platform.
Tenchi
was up with the sun. After a few stretching exercises he went
to
the backyard and went through some of the kata he contemplated
the
night before. After a half hour he went inside for a quick
shower
before breakfast. Ernesto was at his usual crossword puzzle
while
Tia brought out breakfast. She winked at Tenchi and said,
"Don't whip
up on them too hard today now." Tenchi
smiled back and dug into his
meal.
At the dojo, Tenchi
quickly settled into his meditation, building his
strength for the
coming challenge. He would have to be very quick on
his
feet.
They all began donning their armor. Tenchi took care to
tie his on
carefully, setting it up to allow maximum freedom of
movement. He
was very focused and serious this morning, and vowed
not to give a
repeat performance of the day before.
They
began, with Tenchi shuffling and circling to keep the two men
in
front of him. At first it didn't go the way he wanted. As he
struck
and leapt quickly away, trying to keep his distance, one of
the others
would try to move in behind him. Tenchi was very fast,
and that was
the only thing sustaining him now. Raoul couldn't
resist a taunt,
"Are you going to run all day, or fight."
Tenchi remained silent,
ignoring the distraction. Then he began to
see the patterns of it all,
and something clicked in his mind. He
leapt at Raoul, knocking his
weapon up and away while sweeping his
leg under him and knocking him
into the onrushing Ernesto, who
shortly found his son tangled in his
legs as Tenchi's bamboo sword
struck against his twice quickly, one
hitting down and the next
batting the older mans sword aside and at
the same time striking
him in the midsection with a powerful sidekick,
putting father and
son together on the ground in a heap. Tenchi then
leapt back into
a defensive stance waiting for them to get back up.
If he could
only have seen their faces, he would have become over-
confident.
Instead, he contemplated on the upcoming empty hand bout.
(Paybacks
a bitch.)
The two were quickly back on their feet. Ernesto was
impressed with
the tactics. Raoul was just recovering from the
shock. They would
not let him get away with that tactic a second
time. They began
circling again, trying to get Tenchi between
them. Ernesto had an
idea to try to manuever Tenchi into a corner.
With a bit of subtle
movement, his plan seemed to come together.
Tenchi was almost into
the corner when the two men struck out at
the same time. Instead
of leaping back as Ernesto wanted him too,
Tenchi leap forward,
catching Ernesto's sword on his while ducking
under Raouls strike,
slamming into his body. Tenchi twisted the
kendo sword out of
Raouls suprised hands while parrying a second
swipe by Ernesto.
Then Tenchi was behind them, a weapon in each
hand. He rushed at
Ernesto, swinging the two bamboo swords in a
pattern more suited
to Escrima fighting sticks. After landing a
strike on the top of
Ernesto's head, he leapt back, tossing
Raoul's sword back to him.
(Amazing) Ernesto thought. Getting
back into it, Ernesto tried
just engaging Tenchi directly giving
Raoul time to circle around.
Tenchi was too fast though, always
leaping away before his son
could get into a position to strike.
Tenchi put up a seemingly
invincible defense. Then all of a
sudden, Raoul found himself in
a position to strike. As he swung
downward he found Tenchi had
spun his back fully towards him with
his sword parrying over his
right shoulder, then he dropped to his
knees and caught Ernestos
sword on Raoul's, then he pushed both
off his and did two quick
swipes across both of their midsections,
then landed a open hand
strike to Raoul's stomach while parrying
another strike from
Ernesto, then sweeping his leg out to trip the
older man up. As
they both regained their balance, Tenchi leapt
back into a defensive
stance.
All three men were breathing
heavily. They hadn't expected this.
Ernesto bowed to Tenchi, Raoul
following suit. Tenchi returned the
bow after relaxing. They began
peeling off the armor, and Tenchi
knew what came next. Getting
trounced.
"You know, Tenchi, I was just a warm up for the
rest of your trip.
As far as the top ten swordsmen go, I've got to
be number 10. Well,
maybe 11 now," The master said with a
smile. "Where I really shine
is in empty hand." Tenchi
inwardly groaned, Ernesto knew that he
dreaded the next part, and
was rubbing it in.
Tenchi was suprised when he was tossed a
bokken instead. Ernesto
regarded him with a smile, "Now,
young sensei, please teach us some
of those esoteric sword
kata!"
Mihoshi
was on final approach to the lake in front of the Masaki
home.
After settling in for an uncharacteristically perfect landing,
she
slumped over the controls and let out a long pain filled sigh.
It
was late at night, so she didn't expect anyone to be awake.
Once
inside, she heard a quiet conversation in the kitchen. She
found
Aeka and Ryoko having a late night chat over tea. She was
suprised
by many aspects of the whole scene. Instead of asking
about what
was going on, she joined them at the table. Ryoko
poured Mihoshi a
cup. Aeka noticed Mihoshi's troubled look through
the alcohol
induced fog, "What's wrong Mihoshi? I don't think I've
ever
seen you so subdued?" Ryoko noticed the same thing.
"What
happened Mihoshi? Something bad happened didn't it?"
Mihoshi
slowly nodded, confirming Ryoko's fear. She drained her
cup for
strength, then began relating the details of her battle
with the
pirates.
Chapter 9
WASHUUUUUUUUUUUU!!!!!!!!!!!!!!
Ryoko stormed into
the little scientist's lab, very upset. In tow
was a very tipsy
princess and an equally upset Mihoshi. Hearing
Ryoko revert to her
old form of address, Washuu winced, wondering
why. She popped up
behind them, and quietly asked, "What's wrong."
Ryoko
spun about quickly, and Aeka bounced off of her, falling to
the
ground. Very quickly, Mihoshi grabbed onto her, preventing
her
fall and steadying her on her feet. "I think thats supposed
to
happen the other way around," muttered the princess.
"I'll
tell you what's wrong," yelled Ryoko, "That damn THING you
made,
it really messed up Mihoshi, that's what!"
Mihoshi
stepped in, crying, but not in a hysterical wail, "Ryoko,
it's
not her fault, it's mine. I should have known better than to
mess
with anything in the lab."
Ryoko disagreed, "She
had no business making that THING in the first
place!"
Aeka
was confused about the subject, as most things discussed in
Washuu's
lab seemed to be over everyone's head but Washuu. She
provided a voice
of reason, however, "Ryoko, it doesn't
matter who is at fault right now.
I think we could accomplish more
here if we try to solve this problem."
Ryoko got a grip,
and lowered her head, forcing herself to calm. Aeka
saw this, and
found a couch to sit on. Ryoko regained her composure,
and looked
up again. "Okay, I'm calm. Now, Mihoshi has a problem, and
you,
Washuu, are going to fix it, right?"
Washuu looked at her
daughter with a mixture of hurt and alarm. (The VR
glasses did
more to Mihoshi than I realized!) "Alright, lets get her to
this
bed over here," she summoned her holotop and equipment began
to
appear. Once they got Mihoshi settled in and had some scanners
hooked
up, "Okay, tell me what happened."
As
Mihoshi related the incident, Washuu tapped into Yukinojo to pull
up
the video, audio, and other data relating to the incident. She
also
downloaded the GP manual and pertinent sections of Galactic
law. Soon,
she had enough data from Mihoshi to begin analysis.
Ryoko sat by the
bedside the whole time, holding Mihoshi's hand,
while Aeka had passed
out on the couch.
Washuu went over
the data for a while, noting this and that. Eventually
she came to
a conclusion, and let out a long sigh before beginning. "Okay,
here's
the situation. Ryoko, Mihoshi relived some of your life. About
fifty
years worth. Now, since she has only lived about half as long
as
that, so in her psyhce, she has been you longer than she has
been herself.
Plus, she experienced all the trauma without the
psychological blocks
that you had which protected your mind. Some
of the problems generated
include something similar to multiple
personality disorder, and post
traumatic stress syndrome. But like
you, it is a unique case with unique
problems. I'll work on this,
but right now, she needs to avoid all stress
and relax for a
while."
"But her job! She's GP! Stress is
inevitable! She can't just take off
work whenever she feels like
it. And that prisoner of hers, what do we
do with him?"
"Let
me handle it, okay? I'll work on this tonight. Why don't you go
get
some rest."
"I'm not going anywhere."
"Alright, but don't distract me, I have alot of work to do."
Ryoko
nodded and sat my Mihoshi for a while. Then she remembered Aeka.
She
began searching around for something, when Washuu cleared her
throat,
"Ahem!" Ryoko turned about in time to catch a
blanket hurled at her.
"Now sit still! I said no
distractions!" After covering Aeka up on the
couch she sat by
the bed again and looked over at her mother. She was
typing away
furiously, a look of intense concentation on her face. The
Blonde
GP soon fell asleep. Ryoko began to nod off, when the sounds
of
Mihoshi moaning in her sleep made her sit up. After a while,
Washuu
noticed too, as Mihoshi began to toss and turn. She pulled
up a second
holotop, and began typing on it with one hand while
continuing to work
on the other. A second array of equipment
appeared near Mihoshi's head,
and she began to rest easier. After
a few hours or so Ryoko looked back
over at Washuu, who hadn't
slowed a bit in her work.
"Is there anything I can do to help?"
Washuu paused and looked over at Ryoko, "No, I'm almost finished here."
Ryoko looked down at the floor
before replying "I'm sorry I yelled at
you
earlier...Mom."
Washuu smiled and sighed,
smiling with her mouth, but with sad eyes.
Ryoko looked up and saw
this, and releasing Mihoshi's hand, she got up
and went over to
Washuu and gave her a big hug. A single tear ran down
Washuu's
cheek, unnoticed by either
one.
Tenchi
spent the whole morning going over Juraian sword techniques
with
Ernesto and Raoul. After lunch, they returned to the house.
"So, you
ready or the big weekend Tenchi?" Raoul asked.
"What do you mean?"
"Well, we said we were going to
take you partying! You don't have to
leave until Sunday, so we
have tonight and Saturday."
"But what about training?"
"Are you planning on training every day
all summer? You can over do it
you know. Time off is good for
you."
Ernesto appeared, "Yes Tenchi, you need to
take time off for balance. Go
have fun. You have earned
it."
"Okay, I suppose you are right. Where are we going?"
"Well, first things first, let's see what
you have to wear. I have to
make sure you look good for the
ladies," Raoul said with a smirk. "Now
let's see if you
have anything to wear out."
Tenchi showed Raoul the
clothes he brought along. "Nope, these just
won't do at
all."
Waving goodbye to Ernesto, the two took off for the
mall. Raoul picked
out a couple of outfits for Tenchi, with the
help of a salesgirl, and
they headed back to his place. "Alright,
there are fresh towels in the
bathroom closet. Go get ready, so
when Maria gets home we can get her
opinion."
Later
on, Tenchi was relaxing on the couch when Maria came in. "Stand
up,
let me take a look at you." Tenchi complied, sheepishly.
"Damn boy, you look so handsome in that outfit!"
Tenchi turned a shade of red, and looked down at the floor.
Maria just
laughed and went to find Raoul. A few hours later, the three
drove
off. Soon they came to a house that had cars parked all around it.
As
they got out of the truck, they could hear the loud beat of music
that
was coming from inside. Tenchi was a little nervous, and
Raoul noticed.
Putting his hand on his shoulder, he said, "Just
relax and have a good
time! You are here to have fun."
Inside
he was greeted with an assault on his senses. Since he was
very
hungry, the first thing he noticed was the smell of food,
which he quickly
located set out on two table along the far wall.
The music was loud
enough to prevent conversation. The stereo
played an intense latin dance
beat. It looked as though all the
furniture was shoved against the wall,
to make room for dancing.
Some of the women on the 'dance floor' got his
attention then. One
in particular caught his eye. She wore a short
skirt with a top
that left her midsection bare. As he watched her, she
noticed and
met his gaze with a big smile. Tenchi realized he was staring
and
quickly looked away. Then Maria was in his ear, "That's Jenny,
why
don't you go dance with her." Tenchi quickly answered,
"I'm going to eat
first." Over at the buffet, Tenchi
helped himself to the veritable feast.
While eating, he
watched Raoul and Maria dancing with abandon, having a
good old
time. They looked so happy together. Tenchi sighed, and thought
about
Ryoko. As his thoughts drifted, he felt someone grab his
hand.
Looking up he saw Jenny smiling. "Come and dance!"
She shouted over the
music. He looked around quickly and spotted
Raoul and Maria. They were
both looking at him with serious
expressions. They made motions with
their hands, indicating he
should go with her. Reluctant and nervous,
he was led to the dance
floor. He began dancing a bit half heartedly,
but Jenny would have
none of that, and tried to get him to relax and
follow her lead.
Tenchi wasn't a quick enough study, and soon found
himself flanked
by Raoul and Maria. With a nod to Jenny, they took
him over to a
counter with an impressive line up of alcohol. Raoul
sat with
Tenchi and poured two shots of Bacardi. "Down the hatch my
man!"
he toasted. Tenchi's face twisted a bit as the rum made it's way
down
to his belly. Raoul poured him another. After a few, Raoul said,
"You
know, you really should loosen up. It's necessary for balance
too."
Tenchi just nodded, feeling the alcohol take affect. He
knew what Raoul
was trying to do, and figured he'd go along with
it. Soon Jenny was back,
and Tenchi looked at Raoul who nodded,
and motioned with his head over
to the dance floor.
This
time, Tenchi was able to dance. He fell into a rhythm with the
music,
just letting himself loose. Jenny smiled and danced, and
soon took him by
the hands, and led him in some dance moves, which
he quickly picked up.
With the sense of balance and timing he
achieved through years of Martial
Arts practice, he was able to
catch on fast. At first, Tenchi tensed up
anytime their bodies
would make contact. He learned over time to just
deal with it, as
it was part of dancing. He began doing very well, and
they danced
for a long time. Eventually, feeling a bit overheated, he
shouted
to Jenny he needed a drink and a rest. She grabbed his hand and
took
him over to the bar. Instead of alcohol, Tenchi found a bottle
of
cola and some ice. Jenny made herself some concoction and began
sipping.
Tenchi quickly drained his glass, burped, and poured
another. Jenny just
watched him, sipping slowly from her straw.
Tenchi took his time on the
second drink, afraid he would get
hiccups. Jenny was making him nervous.
"I'm going to go
outside for a bit. See you later!" Tenchi shouted, and
found
his way to the back porch. Outside, at least he could hear
himself
think. Tenchi sat down on a chair and looked up at the
stars, wondering
about the things that went on up there. From the
increase in the volume
of the music, he could tell that someone
had opened the door. Jenny
came out and sat down next to him.
"So what are you doing out here all alone?"
"Just needed some fresh air and a little quiet." said Tenchi.
"Weren't you having fun with me?"
"Well, yes. Thank you for the dance."
After a long pause,
"You really miss her, don't you."
"How do you know? How can you tell?"
"No man walks away from me without a good reason," Jenny smiled.
Tenchi looked over at her and smiled back, "The best reason."
Someone else came out the door then.
"So, is this guy you're cheating on me with?"
Both turned to see a pretty big guy looking none too pleased.
"You can't cheat on someone you're not going
out with Manny. Even
you can't be stupid enough not to know
that."
His face turned very dark, "You're coming with me, now!"
"Go home Manny, I'm not going anywhere tonight."
Manny grabbed Jenny by the wrist and
pulled her onto her feet. Tenchi
was still seated, looking up at
the two, "Let her go."
The larger man looked down
with mixed anger and amusement, "You better
mind your own
business, kid. You're lucky I don't just bitch slap you
for
talking to her."
"Let her go."
And he
did, swinging an open hand to deliver the slap he promised.
Tenchi
reached up, almost casually, while simultaneously rocking
back on the rear
two legs of his chair, catching Mannys hand. As
the chair rocked back
forward, he used its momentum along with the
swing of his antagonists arm
to engage him in an Aikido stlye
wrist lock while smoothly rising to a
standing position. Applying
just enough pressure to let the other guy
know who was in charge,
Tenchi looked over at Jenny, "You alright?"
Jenny
sat back down, rubbing her wrist, "Yeah, I'm okay." She
appraised
the situation for a moment. "Wow, you sure
Kung-Fued his ass!" She walked
around behind Tenchi, feeling
safer with him between her and Manny.
Tenchi looked down again
at Manny, who was grunting in pain, and afraid
to move lest Tenchi
break his arm. "Actually, Kung-Fu is more of a Chinese
style."
Then he said to Manny, "So, where do we go from here?"
"What?" Manny grunted through clenched teeth.
"Well, you have two
clear paths. Apologize to the lady here, or I subdue
you further.
I'd rather relax and have another drink, what do you say?"
Manny
was letting his anger get the better of him, and tried struggling
a
bit, in vain. "Are you sure you wouldn't rather have a
drink?"
"OKAY! OKAY! Just let me go!"
"Apologize."
He began to struggle a
bit more, but Tenchi added just a bit more pressure
for
persuasion.
"ALRIGHT! I'M SORRY! OKAY! I'M SORRY! JUST LET GO!"
Tenchi pushed forward and let him go, and he
fell in a heap on the ground.
Manny stood up, looking angrily at
Tenchi. It looked like he was
considering something, when someone
else joined the group on the porch.
"Picking fights out here
my man?" Tenchi turned to see Raoul.
Manny knew Raoul by
his reputation, a nice guy you don't want to mess with.
Whatever
he had been considering seemed forgotten now. Then he turned
angrily
and stalked off into the night.
"You get a restraining order against him yet?" Raoul asked.
"Damn sure did!
His ass is in big trouble now!" Jenny replied angrily.
Then
she shouted out into the darkness, "HEAR THAT ASSHOLE! YOU'RE
GOING
TO JAIL NOW, STUPID!"
"C'mon, let's go get
a drink." Tenchi said. The three made their way back
inside.
Ryoko
walked out of the lab, stretching and letting out a big yawn.
Sasami
had just started making breakfast. Ryoko walked over and
laid a
had affectionately on the little girls head, "Good
Morning
Sasami."
"What's wrong, Ryoko? You look tired."
"Long night. Say, we have a ... guest.
Could you make up a plate
for me to take out to Mihoshi's
ship?"
Sasami looked up excitedly, "We have a
guest!" Then she got a perplexed
look, "But why on
Yukinojo?"
Ryoko bent down and whispered
conspiratorially, "We have a space pirate
held prisoner on
board."
Sasami's face lit up and she clasped her hands
together, "Oh boy! A real
space pirate! Can I go see? Can I,
can I?"
Ryoko titled her head to the side and with a tone
of mock hurt in her voice,
"Oh, so I'm not a REAL space
pirate now, huh?"
"Well, you were under...I mean, it wasn't ..."
Ryoko smiled down at the little princess, "I'm just kidding!"
Sasami brightened, "Well, can I bring it over to see?"
Ryoko thought for a minute,
"Well, you can go over with me. But
I want you to stay behind
me
okay?"
"Yippee!"
Morai
was doing push ups in his cell. Sitting around for so long in
the
enclosed quarters was really starting to get to him. He was
wondering about
what was going to happen. (That crazy woman, I
don't even think she is GP.
But why else would she attack? Why
didn't she kill me? Why didn't she
leave me at the space port at
the GP station?) Numerous other questions
and doubts filled his
head, but the exercise helped clear his mind and
relieve his
restlessness. He heard someone coming, and quickly got up to
sit
on his bunk. Through the force field door he saw a woman with a
tray
of food with a little girl in tow. (At least it isn't HER!)
he thought.
Morai started to think about how he could get past
them, but in light of
recent events, acting too quickly now might
cost him dearly, so he decided
to bide his time, gather
information, make a plan, then act. With the little
girl keeping a
distance, the woman brought down the force field that was the
door.
She actually seemed very relaxed and unafraid. And something
about
her was...familiar? (Have I seen her somewhere before?)
He decided to
try to talk to her. She handed him the tray of food,
which distracted him
for a moment because it smelled so good,
especialy after eating rations
for so long.
"So, what planet are we on?"
The woman looked at him for a moment
before responding, "Nowhere you've ever
heard of."
"You aren't GP are you?"
This got a laugh out of her, "Definitely not!"
"So what's going to happen to me?"
"Don't know yet, but when we decide, you'll be the first to know."
With that, she left the cell, and Morai with even more questions.
Back in the lab, Aeka and
Mihoshi were still asleep. Ryoko went
back to talk to Washuu, who
was yawning over her holotop. "Any
answers yet Mom?"
"Well,
I just looked through the GP manual and the law books. Since
this
is protected territory, officers assigned out here have quite a
bit
more flexibilty within the regulations. Since they are spread so
few
and far between, they are granted pretty wide authority. It's a
bit
of a stretch of the regulations, since according to the ships
logs
the capture took place on the border, but I can fix the logs.
After
all the legal mumbo jumbo, the bottom line is, Mihoshi can
hold a
prisoner as long as she thinks necessary."
"So that keeps him from messing up her career. What about her mind?"
"Well, that is difficult to say. As I told
you before, the mind is a
complex thing. You fool around in one
area to fix one thing, and you
mess something else up. There were
no blocks in her mind to begin
with, and she doesn't have the
mechanisms to put them there either.
The more I look at it, she
may have to live with it."
"But there must be something we can do?"
"Well, first off, I'll have
her put in for some comp time. She was so
happy living here she
hasn't taken any time off since she arrived. I
checked and she has
six weeks coming to her. In that time, I should
be able to figure
out a way to help her deal with this."
Ryoko nodded, and
made her way up to the rafters to catch up on
some
sleep.
Tenchi
rolled over and looked out the window. From how bright it
was
outside, he figured it was pretty late in the morning. He
didn't feel
to bad, those few shots of rum didn't hit him to hard.
Tia was in the
kitchen cooking, humming a merry tune.
"Good morning Tia, what's for breakfast?"
She smiled at him and said, "You mean lunch Tenchi!"
Raoul and Maria kept
him out really late the night before. They stopped
at an all night
diner after the party for a very early breakfast. He
looked up
and Ernesto came through the door, "Looks like you have a
care
package here Tenchi!" Tenchi thanked him and opened the
box. Wrapped
up inside very carefully were some rice cakes and
other treats. From
the date on the package, it must have been sent
the day he left. There
was only a small note from Sasami
inside:
Hi Tenchi!
I hope you are having fun! I made
these for you after you left. I wish
I could have gone with you to
see more of Earth. You have to write and
tell us all about the
places you visit. See you later!
Sasami
There is no
feeling that compares to what it's like when you get a package
from
home. Tenchi smiled, feeling just a little homesick, and thought
of
his family. He decided he'd spend some time after lunch writing
a few
letters.
"So Tenchi, I heard you had a little
disagreement last night?" Ernesto
asked over lunch.
Tenchi
laughed nervously, putting his hand on the back of his head.
"Oh,
it was no disagreement. Just this guy bothering a lady."
Tenchi
felt like he was about to be scolded.
"Raoul
told me all about it, you did the right thing. Many of your age
and
abilty would have been tempted to do great harm to someone
mistreating
such a pretty young lady. I'm pleased to see that
someone of your age can
act with such great restraint."
Memories of Ryoko's antics quickly flashed through Tenchi's head.
"I've had lots of practice." Tenchi smirked.
After lunch,
Tenchi excused himself and went up to his room to do some
writing.
Writing to these unusual girls in his particular
situation presented quite a
challenge. Especially since he wasn't
all that confident in his letter writing
abilities. (Well, I
promised, may as well get to it.)
Dear Sasami,
Thank
you for the tasty snacks. This is my first week away, and I've
been
in a suburb of San Franciso. I've been busy training, so I
haven't been around
to see much other than the dojo and some
friends houses. Back home just about
everyone is Japanese, but
here, there are more nationalities than I can count.
The training
has been tough so far, but I'm learning new techniques. I've
made
some new friends (and maybe even a new enemy!) My host,
Ernesto, is a very nice
man with a wonderful family. I went to a
party last night and learned how to
dance. I hope all is well back
home. Take care of everyone for me!
(Well, that was one of the easy ones.)
Dear Aeka,
Well, it's been a pretty
long week for me. The master I am training with, Ernesto,
is well
versed in many of Earths advanced fighting techniques. He has been
keeping
me very busy. I haven't done much other than train, eat,
and rest. Some summer
vacation, huh? But honestly, it has been
alot of fun. I hope everyone is getting
along back home. Tomorrow
I'm going to leave here to meet the next master. All
this secrecy
in my travel arrangements turned out to be a way to keep anyone
from
finding out where grandpa lives. It seems he is a legend in
Earths sword fighting
community, and he would be swamped with
aspiring students if anyone knew where he
was! I'll write back
next week, good bye until then!
(That wasn't so easy. Wish I had more to write about.)
Dear Mihoshi,
I'm having fun
out here, learning alot. I hope you are feeling better after
what
happened in Washuu's lab. I was really worried about you. I
was glad to see you
and Ryoko getting along so well. Take care of
each other for me while I am gone,
okay? You would have been proud
of me yesterday! I protected someone from a mean
guy who wanted to
boss her around. I think he is in trouble with the police now.
Stay
safe when you are out on patrol. See you later!
(Okay, that's it for the easy ones, now for the tough one.)
My dearest Ryoko,
Never does a moment go by, without you on my mind. I
was blind Ryoko. How could
I have not seen my love for you? Maybe
because I was blinded by its brightness?
This past week without
you has been the longest of my life, or so it seems, by
not having
you near me. In missing you, I feel my only comfort is how much
more
wonderful it will be when we are together at last. I Love
you, and I wish I could
see you when I tell you again. I want to
look into your lovely golden eyes and
see you smile. I miss having
your arms around me. I want to hear your sweet
voice in my ear as
I hold you close. That is all I look forward to now.
Until
then,
Love,
Tenchi
He read over his
letter to Ryoko again, wondering if he went a bit overboard.
(Well,
it will just have to do!) He sealed the letters in four
separate
envelopes, which he placed in one larger envelope.
Ernesto promised him he
would send it out as priority mail first
thing Monday morning. He spent
the rest of the day and evening
relaxing, chatting with Ernesto and his family.
He had a long day
ahead of him, so decided to go to bed a little early.
Saying
goodnight to everyone, he then excused himself to his room.
Sleep didn't come
all that easy, because of Ryoko on his mind and
his anticipation of the journey
ahead of him tomorrow. Eventually
he drifted off, and had a pleasant dream of
going on a vacation
with Ryoko out among the
stars.
Aeka
woke up with headache and a terrible taste in her mouth. (uh! What
did she
do last night, try to poison me?) Slowly opening her eyes
fearing she would be
blinded by the seemingly harsh lights, she
found herself in Washuu's domain. The
little scientist was passed
out, half of her resting on her floating cushion, the
other half
lying at the other end of the couch. She saw Mihoshi resting on a
bed
nearby. Wondering what was wrong, she searched her memory of the
night before.
(Something bad happened to Mihoshi, but what? She
said something about a battle
with a pirate fleet, and... what?
I can't remember.) She left the lab and went
into the living room.
She heard snores from overhead. She wanted to grill Ryoko
for
answers, but didn't feel like dealing with the foul mood she would be
in if her
sleep was disturbed. Sasami was in the kitchen, making
lunch. She turned when she
heard her sister come in. Her eyes got
real big, "Wow, Aeka! That outfit you are
wearing is
beautiful! Did you go out in that last night?" Aeka thought back
to the
nightclub experience, "Yes Sasami, we had a very good
time...for the most part."
"I'm so happy you and
Ryoko are getting along Aeka. I hope you can keep doing so
after
Tenchi comes back."
Aeka smiled sadly, "We will see, I suppose."
Then Sasami remembered something, "Hey, Aeka! Did you know we had a space pirate here?"
Aeka frowned, "Well, of course we do Sasami. Ryoko's always here...unforturately."
Sasami looked at her warningly,
"No Aeka! Mihoshi captured a REAL space pirate on
her last
patrol! Wanna go see him? I have to bring him lunch."
"I
don't want you going near any strangers Sasami," Aeka scolded,
"Especially not
criminal strangers!"
"It's
okay Aeka, really! Ryoko went with me last time. It'll be okay."
Then
the little princess looked up at the rafters, "Well, if you
don't go with me,
I'll have to find somebody else."
Aeka
then decided reluctantly to go. Although she was getting along better
with
Ryoko, she didn't want her little sister running to Ryoko
when Aeka wouldn't do
something with
her.
Morai
considered what little items he had in is cell. The bed was a
simple
lightweight affair with no useful parts to remove. His
breakfast tray was
made of light plastic. Giving up hope on making
a weapon, he turned his bed
on its end so he could do pull ups. If
he couldn't make a weapon, he could
at least stay in shape so he
could use his bare hands if needed. After working
out and
relaxing, he saw someone coming again. It was a different woman
this
time, but with the same little girl along. The woman took the
tray and stood
before the barrier. She seemed tense, not all
relaxed and nonchalant like the
last one. He decided better than
trying anything at the present time. He
needed more information
than he had. Unlike his brother, Kai, Morai was much
more
cautious, and crafty. When the time came, he would get out of here,
and
do it right. The force field door of the cell opened. With the
little girl
watching, Aeka stepped inside and handed him the tray.
(They are so damn relaxed
these girls. What am I missing
here?)
"So, what's your name?"
Aeka didn't
even answer. She just turned her nose into the air, "Humpf!"
and
walked out, sealing the doorway. (Little snob huh?) Another bit
of
knowledge. Piece by piece, he would find out what was going on,
and have
his revenge.
Chapter 10
Mihoshi sat up wearily from her bed. Looking around, she
spotted Washuu laying
on her cushion and the couch, sound asleep.
Quietly, she got up and made her
way out of the lab. She went into
the living room and heard sounds coming from
the kitchen. Sasami
was cleaning up from lunch "Hello Sasami."
"Hi Mihoshi, are you okay?"
"I'm just a little tired, that's all. Have you seen Ryoko around?"
"Yes, she
went with Aeka to the baths. Say, would you like to go with me to
feed
the pirate after dinner? Ryoko and Aeka went with me the last
two times."
Mihoshi reluctantly agreed, not wanting to disappoint her little friend.
She decided to join her friends in the bath.
"C'mon Aeka, you said there's no harm in being friends with those guys!"
"well, I'm allowed to change my mind, aren't
I? Besides, you got me drunk
to get me to agree to that, so it
doesn't count."
"Chickening out Princess?"
"No,
it's just...I don't think Tenchi would appreciate me spending
time
with another man!"
"Just as friends Aeka! I didn't say you had to make out with him or anything!"
"You don't understand, it wouldn't be appropriate."
Ryoko
tried a different approach, "Oh well, I guess I'll just have the
two
of them all to myself."
"Of course, dear
Ryoko! Have as many men as possible! I'm sure you prefer
it that
way."
Ryoko ignored the barb, "Thanks Aeka! I think
I liked Joey better anyway.
Imagine how jealous Tenchi will
be."
"What?"
"Nevermind princess, you wouldn't understand."
"Oh, so that's your plan!
It will never work you know. In fact, Tenchi will
probably be
happy to see your attention diverted elsewhere."
Mihoshi
showed up just then, not bubbling over with her usual enthusiasm,
"Hi
Ryoko, hi Aeka. How are you doing."
The two
women looked at her, their current topic of discussion forgotten
for
the moment. Ryoko magically produced a bottle of sake and some
cups. "Hey
Mihoshi, let's have a drink!" She poured two
cups and after looking at Aeka
questioningly, and recieving a nod
from the princess, poured a third.
After a couple of rounds, Ryoko brought up matters of more importance.
"Mihoshi,
Washuu says you should put in for some time off so we can figure
out
how to deal with things."
"Yes, Mihoshi dear. You
work so hard, at your job as well as helping around
here. You
deserve a vacation anyway," Aeka added.
"Well, I do have alot of vacation time saved up. How long should I take off?"
"All of it, " was Ryoko's instant response.
"Are you sure? What about my prisoner?"
"Don't
you worry about him. Me and Washuu will take care of this whole
mess
for you. We just want you to relax for a while
okay?"
"Alright."
"Besides, I already have plans for you."
"Really?"
"Yeah,
we met these guys last night, I think one of them is your type.
What
do you say? Want to go out next weekend?"
"Well, first I have to make sure I can get the time off..."
"Okay,
but make sure you call soon. Now Princess, back to what I was
saying
earlier. You sure you don't want to come along?"
Aeka
had mulled the matter over in her head, and decided that if
Mihoshi
went with them, three girls with two guys wouldn't seem as
inappropriate.
Not to mention the fact that she did actually enjoy
talking to Joey.
"Oh alright. I suppose so."
"Try not to sound so enthusiastic," Ryoko smirked.
The pricess
made sense to Ryoko of course. She didn't want to make Tenchi
jealous
at all, she just wanted Aeka to get to know Joey a little
better.
With Mihoshi along, Ryoko would be the fifth wheel that
Aeka professed to
want to be. She wanted to talk to Washuu about
it, but she already had
her hands full with Mihoshi's
problem.
The three women relaxed in silence for a while. Ryoko
getting what pleasure
out of life she could from the hot bath and
sake.
Sasami was about to start on dinner when Ryoko showed up. "Hey Ryoko!"
"Ready to start on dinner kiddo?" she smiled.
"Yes, but first, can you tell me what's going on?
I'm dying to know
about Mihoshi and the pirate!"
Ryoko
didn't know what she should tell her. So far only her, Washuu,
Tenchi
and Mihoshi knew about the incident in the lab. She would
have to tell
everyone eventually, but it would be better if she
told Aeka about it first.
"Well it's a long story. I'd rather
Mihoshi tell you because she was there."
Disappointed, Sasami said okay as they began preparing dinner.
After eating
she put another tray of food together and went with Mihoshi out
to
her
ship.
Morai
had fallen asleep. Between the stress, thinking and exercise, he
had
pushed himself to exhaustion. Mihoshi saw the lights had dimmed
in
the cell. This was an automatic response to the prisoners brain
waves,
indicating he was asleep. This served to reduce the
workload of the GP
in charge and to make sure a prisoner wasn't
faking sleep. Mihoshi
deactivated the force field door, and the
lights came up as the pirate
quickly sat upright. All his years in
criminal activity had conditioned
him to be a light sleeper. He
saw who was here this time, and jumped up
standing with his back
against the far end of the cell from the door.
SHE brought him the
food this time. Calming himself for a moment, he
realized that
maybe he wasn't doomed. He took a long appraising look at
Mihoshi
for the first time since his capture. (She's afraid? Maybe even
more
than me.) This confused him further. She carefully set the tray
down,
and gathered up the remains of the past meal. She backed out of
the
cell cautiously, and reactivated the door. The little girl stared
at
him for a moment in wonder, then they both
left.
Yosho
and Ryoko were sparring. He told her not to hold back. In
fighting
her over 700 years ago, he had to deflect and redirect
her strikes, because
she was just too powerful for him to absorb a
direct impact from her blade.
This time it was different, because
she could rely on technique as well as
brute force. For the third
time this session, the result was the same.
The sound of a loud
crack rolled down the mountainside, and splinters
filled the air.
Katsuhito Masaki sighed, and tossed what was left of
his bokken on
the woodpile, to join the remains of three others.
Ryoko just
stood there nervously, thinking he would be mad at her for
destroying
the last of his wooden practice swords. "I supposed we can
move
on from sparring to kata now." Ryoko relaxed and smiled at
him
sheepishly, as he went to retrieve two katanas. (It won't be
long until
I've run out of sword kata to teach her) he thought.
After teaching her
two more, they took a seat next to each other
on the shrine steps.
"So Ryoko, what is this news I've heard of a new guest in our home."
"Well, he's not in the house really. He's a prisoner of Mihoshi's."
Ryoko
hadn't considered what Yosho would think of the current
situation,
and realized that he might actually be able to come up
with an idea or
two about how to deal with it.
"So why did she bring him here, and not to the GP station?"
"Well,
maybe you should talk to Mom about that. It's a long story,
but
she is trying to take care of a little problem of Mihhoshi's."
"Hmm,
I suppose I will. I have a problem of my own I'd like to discuss
with
her. Would you accompany me to the house."
"Um...sure."
Back
down at the house, Yosho went down to see Washuu while Ryoko went
to
find Aeka.
Washuu was lookng over some things on her computer
screen, when Yosho
entered the lab.
"So, need some new training swords, Lord Yosho?"
He raised an eyebrow, then
remembered the mental link the little redhead
had with her
daughter. "Yes, as a matter of fact. But I would like to
discuss
with you some recent events."
"You mean Mihoshi and
her prisoner of course. Well, it all started with
an idea of mine
to help people understand my poor little Ryoko..."
Aeka
was watching TV when Ryoko joined her on the couch. She sat
quietly
until the show was over. "Aeka, if you have time,
there's something I
need to talk to you about. It's
Mihoshi."
"Well, I've been meaning to ask you about
that all day, but you kept on
changing the subject. What exactly
is wrong with her?"
Ryoko related the story of the VR
glasses and Mihoshi's little lab
accident.
"So you
see, that's why she went ballistic in that battle. I don't want
to
see Mihoshi getting locked up for police brutality. I also wanted
you
to know because I wasn't sure how to explain all this to Sasami."
"I
see. Now I understand why you two got so close all of a sudden.
All
she said last night makes sense to me now. What can we do
about this?"
"Well, Mom says Mihoshi needs to rest,
and to avoid stress while she works
on the problem."
"And you, what about your problems?"
"My problems?"
"Yes, all those mental blocks you have, the ones from Kagato."
"I'd rather not talk about it, Aeka. It...hurts to talk about."
With that she
phased away. Aeka looked at where she had been for
a while,
thinking of Ryoko's revelations about herself.
Washuu had just finished filling Yosho in on the details.
"So, if I
understand this correctly, Mihoshi and Ryoko have shared
a piece
of Ryoko's life, and now Ryoko is a small part of her?"
"Well, you could say that."
"Hmm. I will give this matter
some thought. Let me know if you find
out anything else."
"Oh,
and I'll make up a little something to help with your
training
problem."
"Thank you Miss Washuu."
She decided to let the 'Miss Washuu' bit slide for now.
Tenchi
opened his eyes and looked over at the clock. (Well, gotta get up
in
a few minutes.) He sighed, thinking about his week at the
Fernandez house.
They seemed like such a happy family. He thought
of his mother, wondering
what his home would be like if she was
still around. He thought about his
future, wondering what his
future family would be like, his children. He
pictured Ryoko, on
the day he saw her wearing his mothers kimono, before
she ripped
it, then he winced, remembering what he said to her. (I never
even
said I was sorry for telling her I hated her. Why am I thinking
of
this now?) He rolled over and reached into his bag, pulling out
his
phone.
Aeka
looked up at the sound of the phone ringing. She jumped up
quickly
from the couch and ran to the phone, almost knocking it to
the floor in
her haste to answer it.
"Masaki residence!"
"Hello Aeka. I'm just calling to check
on things. How is everything
going?"
"Oh Tenchi!
I miss you so! Well, things have been pretty quiet here up
until
last night."
"A big fight?"
"No,
nothing like that at all. In fact Ryoko and I have been getting
along
quite well. But tell me something Tenchi. What do you know
about Mihoshi's
lab accident? Ryoko told me what happened."
"Ah, well...I didn't want to worry Sasami, but I do know about it."
"Apparently, it caused her to have a problem on
the job. Washuu is trying to
fix things, so don't worry about it
too much, Mihoshi seems fine."
"Well, alright then. Is Mihoshi around? I'd like to talk to her about it."
Aeka reluctantly set down the phone and went to look for the blonde.
After searching the house with no luck, she went outside and called for her.
"MIHOSHI!"
"Up here Aeka!"
Turning, Aeka looked up on the roof to see
Mihoshi and Ryoko sitting together.
"Tenchi's on the phone
and wants to speak to you."
The two disappeared suddenly from view.
The two reappeared next to the phone, thanks to
Ryoko's teleportation talent.
Mihoshi picked up the phone first.
"Hello Tenchi!"
"Hi Mihoshi. I'm sorry to hear about your problems. How to you feel?"
"Alright I
guess. Thank you for asking, but don't worry about it Tenchi, I
have
lots of friends here to help! Why don't you talk to Ryoko for a
while?
See you later!"
Mihoshi handed the phone to
Ryoko, winked, and went to head Aeka off. She
caught her just as
she was walking in the door. "Aeka, would you take a
walk
with me please?" The princess reluctantly agreed.
"Hello my Tenchi!"
"Hello Ryoko, I've been thinking about you."
"Really!"
"I can't help it.
I'm so used to having you around that now that I'm away,
I really
miss you."
"I miss you too Tenchi. Are you having fun?"
"Well, it would be more fun if you were here.
I had a dream last night about
us."
Ryoko was just
floating on air, literally, hearing Tenchi speak to her like
this.
"So was I any good in this dream?"
She could almost hear Tenchi blush over the phone.
"No, it wasn't like that. We went on a vacation together."
"Where did we go?"
"Out into space! You took me to all these exotic worlds."
"We could do that someday. Do you want to?"
"I would like that very much. So, you and Aeka are getting along?"
"Mostly Tenchi. I took her
out last night to a club. I'm trying
to fix her up with this guy
we met."
Tenchi didn't like the idea of Ryoko meeting a
guy. "Well, she doesn't
know about us yet, does she?"
Ryoko decided to be playful, "What do you mean Tenchi?"
"Well, you know, us!"
In a very sexy whisper, "Us what, my Tenchi?"
He knew then what she wanted to hear, "Our
love, Ryoko. Me and you. Us,
I love you."
"Say it again my Tenchi."
"I love you, my Ryoko."
"Honestly
Tenchi, I don't know if I can wait the rest of the summer to
see
you."
"Ryoko?"
"I need to see you Tenchi. I need you very badly."
Tenchi thought about this
for a moment, remembering what he had written
to her, and how he
felt. "Maybe you won't have to wait."
Ryoko couldn't believe it, "Really!"
"Really. But I don't know
when okay? I'll think of something.
And you have to keep it a
secret, okay? I don't want grandpa
finding out"
Ryoko
could barely contain her excitement. Her gems even began
glowing
fiercely. "I love you Tenchi."
"I love you too. Now, Aeka doen't know yet right?"
Her excitement died
down. "No Tenchi, she doesn't. That's why I'm
trying to get
her to meet other guys, so she has someone to go to
when she finds
out."
"That's very thoughtful of you. You think it will work?"
"I don't know, but she had fun last night. Maybe."
"Alright. Well, I have to get ready
to travel. I don't know
where I'm going yet, but I'll call you
again soon to let you
know where."
"Yes, my Tenchi."
"Good bye Ryoko, I love you."
"I love you too."
She was very excited, just bursting at the
seams with enthusiasm.
Ryoko danced through the house twirling and
leaping over furniture
and singing. Sasami saw her and shook her
head, wondering what
had made her friend so
happy.
Tenchi
had his bags all packed and was sitting in the living room
waiting
for his ride. Tia had cooked a hearty breakfast for
everyone, and now
all were relaxing and enjoying each others
company.
"So Tenchi, one down, nine to go, huh?" Raoul said.
Tenchi just nodded, fully realizing how much he
had enjoyed himself at their
place, and that he would miss it.
"I'd like to come back and visit sometime."
Ernesto smiled, "We'd be happy to have you back anytime."
They heard a car pull up to the front, and two short blasts from the horn.
"I guess that's for me."
Maria and Tia
each gave him a big hug, and he shook hands with the men.
Only
Raoul walked him out to the car. A limousine awaited him, but what
a
limo! It was the stretched version of a Lincoln Navigator. Raoul
didn't
seem too suprised. He looked at Tenchi and laughed, "You
are really going
to love it where you are headed next. Old Larry's
gonna take real good
care of you."
"You know who I'm training with next?"
"Oh yeah! He was one of
Papa's students for a while. Does the expression
'fatted calf'
mean anything to you?"
Tenchi shook his head no, not being familiar with that expression.
"You'll see. Take care my man!"
Raoul opened the door for him, and patted
him on the back as he went in,
closing the door behind him and
knocking twice on the side of the large
vehicle to let the driver
know he could go.
Tenchi's eyes slowly grew accustomed to the
dark shaded interior. The
first thing to catch his eye were two
beautiful Japanese women.
"Ohayoo Tenchi-Sama."
(Uh oh...)
Tenchi fell over forwards, as the limo started
rolling, right into the arms
of the two.
"Aak!"
He quickly extracted himself from them, apologizing profusely,
and
crawled over to a seat.
Noticing his shyness, the two
shared a knowing smile with each other before
turning back to him.
"Please relax Tenchi. We are here to ensure your comfort
for
the long journey today. I am Emi."
"And I am Rie."
"If there is anything we can do to make you more comfortable,"
"Anything at all,"
"Do not hesitate to ask."
Tenchi couldn't have been more uncomfortable.
"Um...I'm fine. I'll just relax in this seat here for a while."
Emi giggled and Rie sat there
smiling, trying to catch Tenchi's eye.
He sank down in his
seat.
"Would you like a drink Tenchi?"
"No thank you."
"Perhaps a massage?"
"Uh...no thank you."
Rie really liked trying to get through to the
shy ones, it was a
rare treat for her. She got up an sat next to
Tenchi, who sank
even lower in his seat. "Are you sure,
Tenchi? I'm really good
at massages."
At that moment,
memories of a time when he still feared Ryoko
flashed through his
mind. Then he considered the two girls
here and now, (Why should I
be afraid?) Suddenly he had an
idea. "So, anything to make me
comfortable you say?"
Both girls smiled and nodded.
"Anything at all?" Tenchi smiled.
Two two nodded yes more vigorously.
Then Tenchi's voice and face
turned stern, "Then I ask you to leave
me alone."
Looking
disappointed, Rie got up and Emi joined her at the far end
of the
limo from Tenchi. Forty-five minutes of silence later, the
vehicle
came to a stop. Someone opened the door, and squinting in
the
sudden brightness, Tenchi looked out at a red carpet leading up
to
a small jet airplane. Rie and Emi stepped out, beckoning him
to
follow them. Tenchi didn't believe that they were seriously
going
to ride on the jet until a man carried his luggage onto the
plane.
Then he shrugged his shoulders and followed the girls on
board.
The man who carried his bags then briefed him on the flight
and the
use of seat belts. Soon they were airborne, heading east.
During
the flight, the two girls sat quietly, looking a little
unhappy.
Tenchi felt a twinge of guilt. "I'm sorry if I was a
little harsh
earlier." Rie looked up at him, "Don't you
like us?"
"It's not that at all..."
"Emi looked up hopefully, "Then you do like us!"
Tenchi
looked down and sighed, then looked up again at the two girls.
He
pulled out the picture of his family and handed it to them, "See
the
one next to me with the light hair?"
They looked at the photo for a moment before nodding.
"She's the only one for me. Got it?"
"Yes Tenchi." said Emi.
"We're sorry to have troubled you." apologized Rie.
"It's alright. Now, could I have some tea please?"
Emi got up and made some tea, and brought a tray of snacks as well.
Now that he felt more comfortable, he needed to satisfy his curiousity.
"So, can you tell me where we are going?"
"Yes Tenchi, we are going to New York."
"The city?"
"No, in the countryside."
"How long have you worked for,"
he remembered the name, then struggled
with the 'L' sound,
"Rarry?"
"We are only here for this week, he
brought us all the way from Japan
to see to your needs." Emi
finished with a giggle.
Tenchi blushed for a moment before
continuing, "So, have you been to
his place yet?"
"We
were there yesterday before flying out to get you last night."
Rei
answered.
"What's it like?"
"You will soon see Tenchi. Mere words do not do it justice."
Tenchi
was curious about the airplane, and decided to bother the pilots
for
a while. "So, how can you tell where we are?"
"Well,
it's really easy nowadays, see this screen here? It's called a
moving
map. The little airplane symbol represents us, and this line is
our
course. The autopilot follows it for us." Tenchi thought it
looked
easy enough. "So, how did you do this before?"
"Well,
there are radio stations that we can track as a backup to the
GPS.
Look here..." The copilot unfolded a chart and
explained to Tenchi
how radio navigation worked. Understanding it
somewhat, he then asked,
"So how did they find their way
around before that."
The copilot sighed, and pulled out a
battered old chart. "Most people
aren't interested in this
stuff anymore, but you still have to learn it
to get your first
license. See here?" He indicated a small magenta
circle on
the map, "This is the airport we are flying to. Now these
blue
areas here and here are lakes and rivers. These yellow areas..."
As
he described the chart further, Tenchi memorized the features
around
the airport indicated as their destination. Tenchi
interupted for a
moment, "How far from the airport
is,"struggling again with 'L',"Rarry's
house?"
The pilot laughed, "Oh, it's right here...he has his own private runway!"
(Well, I might pull this off after all.) "Could
I borrow this chart? I
find this very interesting."
"Sure,
be my guest. I've memorized most of the important information
on
there already, and I know the land features like the back of my
hand."
Tenchi thanked him, and returned to his seat. "So,
what is there to eat
for lunch?"
Rei actually handed
Tenchi a menu. He didn't think that a plane this small
would have
the capacity for such luxuries. Selecting what looked like
an
American meal, he sat back and watched as Rei took something
similar to a
TV dinner out of a freezer and put it into a
microwave (Well, what did I
expect, a kitchen up here?)
A
couple hours later, the pilot announced that they would be arriving
in
twenty minutes. Tenchi spent the rest of the flight looking out
the windows,
trying to identify features on the ground using the
air chart. He noticed
a lake similar in shape to one on the chart,
then quickly began to pick out
other landmarks as well. As they
drew near the destination, the pilot
instructed him to sit and
secure his seat belt. They circled the field to
the west and
touched down near the beginning of the runway. They hit the
brakes
pretty hard because the runway wasn't very long. The jet pulled up
in
front of a hangar before shutting down the
engines.
Lawrence
Arthur Hamilton III watched as his private jet touched down on
the
runway. (He's here, finally. I've waited so long for this
chance to meet
the legend, and this young man may be the key.)
Lawrence (or Larry) was one
of those fortunate enough to be born
into a wealthy family. From an early
age, he had been fascinated
by the Martial Arts. His parents liked to
spoil their little boy,
so they flew in masters from all over the world to
teach him. He
started early with empty hand styles, then progressed to the
bo,
sai, and other classic weapons. Mastering the integrated
fighting
system of Okinawan Karate Kubudo, a mix of empty hand and
weapons, at age
fourteen, he then discovered his true passion.
Those close to him thought
it more of an obsession - the sword. He
nearly dropped out of Harvard
when his father couldn't persuade a
certain sword master to come out and
train him. Larry's father
asked a favor of Ernesto Fernandez, who then
told Larry that he
would only consent to train him if he graduated first.
Larry
thanked him for convincing him to finish school years later by
loaning
Ernesto the money to start his own business. While
training with Ernesto,
he had been invited to go along with him to
the secret annual tournament
that determines the top sword
fighters in the world. At the last one,
he had finally beaten
Ernesto, earning the number nine position. While
being pushed to
his limits by the number eight man, he realized he needed
an edge.
To train with the legend, Katsuhito Masaki. Katsuhito had only
ever
competed in two of the tournaments, many years ago. The stories
told
of those fights were the stuff of legends. He had tape
recorded interviews
with all those who'd seen and were willing to
talk about it (some thought
that discussing The Tournament was
improper.) It was rumored that he would
send out his heir one day
to train with the champions of The Tournament,
but too many years
went by. Then one day the word went out, and Larry got
his notice.
He decided that he would do what was necessary to convince the
heir
of Katsuhito Masaki to arrange an
introduction.
Tenchi
yawned and stretched, looking forward to exiting the jet. After
the
copiot opened the door, he stepped out with the two girls and was
met
by middle aged man in a suit. "Good afternoon Tenchi. My name
is
Alan Higgins. I work for Mister Hamilton. Come this way
please?"
Alan led Tenchi and the girls to a jeep. After
the copilot deposited
his luggage in the back, Alan drove off
towards the residential portion
of the estate.
Crossing a
hilltop, several words went through Tenchi's mind when he
first
saw it. Palatial, Majestic, Grandiose. Tenchi thought of
how much
effort must go into just keeping the house clean, and winced.
Then
he thought of something else and smiled, (This place would be
really
easy to spot from the air.)
Larry was waiting for him near the
main entrance to the house. Guests
normally would have been
ushered to a reception room in the house, where
he would keep them
waiting until he was ready to see them, but not this
guest.
As
the jeep pulled up to the mansion, Tenchi saw a man standing
outside.
he stood about six feet tall, with dirty blonde hair and
blue eyes. He
wore a loose fitting short sleeve shirt, and from
the look of his
exposed arms it was obvious he was pretty strong.
Tenchi immediately
learned that he also spoke perfect
Japanese.
"Welcome, Tenchi. Lawrence Arthur Hamilton III,
but please, you can call
me Larry, or Art. Whichever you are more
comfortable with."
Larry (Art) had bowed, which Tenchi
returned. Then Tenchi offered his
hand, trying to get used to the
western custom of the handshake. Art
took his hand in a grip made
powerful from the years of sword practice,
and used for
intimidating people in business meetings. Tenchi's grip
was no
less powerful, being somewhat naive to the practice of the
handshake,
he returned the grip equally. Art (Larry) seemed to take it
as a
challenge, but decided that being confrontational was not the
best
way to arrange a meeting with this boys grandfather. They
released
simultaneously, suprising Art. "Thank you, Art. This
is a nice place
you have here."
"Thank you, I
trust your trip was 'pleasant'?" Art asked, smiling at
the
two girls.
"Yes, thank you. I'm not accustomed to such luxury."
Art smiled, "Well, I'm just going to spoil
you this week then. C'mon
in."
Alan departed in the jeep as the four entered the house.
Authors
notes: The next two chapters will be released at the same time due to
a
collabarative effort. Reviews will speed the process along of
course. I really
want some opinions. What did I do right? What did
I do wrong? What did you
love, and what did you hate? What could I
have left out? What should I have
included? For those who have
already reviewed, thank you very much! For those
who have read and
haven't reviewed, please do!
Chapter 11
There's a story in my eyes
Turn the pages of
desire
Now it's time to trade those dreams
For the rush of
passion's fire
I can feel you tremble when we touch
And I feel
the hand of fate
Reaching out to both of us
I've been holding
back the night
I've been searching for a clue from you
I'm
gonna try with all my might
To make this story line come true
Can
ya feel me tremble when we touch
Can ya feel the hand of
fate
Reaching out to both of us
This love affair can't wait
I
can't hold back, I'm on the edge
(I can't hold back)
Your
voice explodes inside my head
I can't hold back, I won't back
down
Girl it's too late to turn back now
Another shooting
star goes by
And in the night the silence speaks to you and I
And
now the time has come at last
Don't let the moment run too fast
I
can feel you tremble when we touch
And I feel the hand of fate
reaching out to both of us
There's a story in my eyes, turn the
pages of desire
Now it's time to trade those dreams
For the
rush of passion's fire
I can't hold back, I'm on the edge
(I
can't hold back)
You voice explodes inside my head
I can't
hold back, I won't back down
Girl it's too late to turn back now
(I Can't Hold Back - Survivor)
Tenchi
looked around in awe as he was led through the spacious mansion.
Art
saw this and smiled. "Like what you see
Tenchi?"
"Uh...it's pretty big."
"You
could say that. After such a long trip I'm sure you'd like to have
a
bath and relax before dinner. I set you up in a room with a
private bath.
The girls will take you there. I will see you at
dinner."
With that, he walked off down a different
corridor. The girls led him down
a hall to an elevator. Once
upstairs they took a long walk down the hall to
his room. They
pushed wide open the double doors and walked in. Just inside
was a
water fountain about six foot in diameter. The soft soothing sound
of
the water splashing and flowing echoed off the marble floor.
The walls were
finished in polished wood, sporting the occasional
tapestry. Large french
doors led out to a huge balcony, and
against one wall was an enourmous bed.
There was a large desk
against another wall with a large computer monitor.
A state of the
art entertainment system was against another wall. Tenchi
dropped
his bag off by what looked like a priceless antique dresser.
"So
where are the baths?" He asked the girls. They went
to a smooth section of
wall and pressed inward. The wall swung
away an a bit of steam wafted out.
Tenchi walked into the baths
and looked around. The bath itself was about
twenty by forty feet,
with steps leading into the water. Rei and Emi stood
by
expectantly. He looked over at them and they asked, "Are you
sure you
wouldn't like us to join you?" Tenchi smiled at
their persistence, but told
them no thank you. Soon, he was alone
and relaxing in the water. He started
dozing off, but shook
himself awake deciding he had relaxed enough. Dressed
and back in
his room alone, he wondered what to do next. He walked out onto
the
balcony and looked out over the scenery. The estate was situated in
the
middle of a sparsely populated and heavily wooded area. Where
he stood he
could see out to the airfield. He was pretty confident
he could describe the
approach to the area well enough for Ryoko
to find it. Before he did, he had
to ask Art if it was okay. Not
giving much thought to anything but seeing her,
he spun on his
heel and walked back into the room, where the two girls were
waiting
for him. They led him back to the elevator and down to a dining
room
where Art met them. Set out on several long tables were many
different dishes,
set out buffet style. "I wasn't sure what
you like to eat, so I gave you a
variety." The amount of food
was staggering. All this for the four of them?
Then Emi and Rei
left. All this for two? "Um...Art, what do you do with all
this
when we are finished?" Art raised his eyebrows at the question.
Then
realized why he was asking, "Don't worry, it won't go to
waste. My staff will
finish what is left over. I have quite a few
people working here for me."
Tenchi seemed satisfied and dug
in. After eating enough to take the edge of
his hunger, they began
speaking between mouthfuls. "So Tenchi, how do you like
Rei
and Emi? Nice huh?" Tenchi turned a slight shade of red,
"Um...Art, you
really shouldn't have. I feel bad, with you
flying them in from Japan for
nothing."
"Nothing? You mean you don't like them?"
"Well, it's not that..." Tenchi felt ashamed for refusing such 'hospitality.'
"Would you have prefered some European women, blondes perhaps?"
"No, really. It's just that..."
"You don't like women?" Art asked cautiously.
"NO! I mean yes I like women! It's just that I have a girlfriend."
"And you are loyal to her. I
see. I'm sorry, I didn't mean to offend. I
assumed, incorrectly,
that you would like some female companionship during
your stay
here. I know I would have in your situation."
"Well, there is one favor I'd like to ask."
"Name it."
"Would it be alright if my girlfriend came to stay here fo a bit."
(Ah, young love.)"Of course! Would you like me to send my jet to pick her up?"
Tenchi
hadn't considered this option, but when he thought about it, by the
time
the jet got all the way to Japan and back would be quite some
time.
"No that's okay, she has her own ride."
Questions
came to Arts mind about this, but before he could voice them,
Tenchi
changed the subject. "So Art, what is our training
schedule like?"
"Oh, well, we will be training in
the evening. My business dealings require
a great deal of my time,
and unfortunately, I have a big project going on this
week. I want
to try to start around 6:30 every evening, but some days it may
be
later. I want you to enjoy your stay here. Alan will take care of
you
during the day. There is plenty to do here, so you shouldn't
get bored. Just
don't tire yourself out before 6:30."
For
a while Tenchi asked him about his business, but much of it involved
options
and futures trading, which seemed incomprehensible to him.
The international
trading he was involved in was easier to
understand, as well as the managing of
several of his
manufacturing companies. Tenchi found himself yawning.
"Excuse me Art, it's been a long day. I think I'll turn in for the night."
"Alright. Do you remember the way?"
"Um.. not exactly."
Rei and Emi appeared from the doorway. "They'll take you. Have a good night."
Tenchi bowed
and followed the girls, paying more attention now to his
surroundings
so he could find his way back on his own.
Art
sat alone at the table, considering what he had learned about his
guest during
the meal. He wouldn't be easy to persuade. To get him
to arrange the meeting, he
would have to try a different
approach.
Ryoko
stood up on her favorite rafter, yawning and stretching. Floating
down to
the floor, she though about the way she had cut Aeka off
last night. It was one
thing to talk to Washuu and Mihoshi about
it, because they had both lived through
it with her. Aeka just
wouldn't understand, besides the fact that she didn't
feel close
enough to the princess to open up to her about those things. It
would
be a long time before she was comfortable enough with her to
talk about it, if ever.
Still, Aeka had seemed genuinely
concerned, and she felt bad just leaving on her
when she asked.
She was shook out of her reverie when the phone
rang.
"Tenchi?"
"How did you know it was me?"
"Just hopeful I guess. You at the next place?"
"Yep, I'm in New York, near the east coast of America."
"So can I come over?"
Tenchi smiled, finally being able to tell her yes to something she wanted to do.
"Are you sure you want to travel all this way?" Tenchi joked.
"TENCHIIIIIIIII!"
"Yes, Ryoko. But I have to tell you how to get here, and when..."
Tenchi told her of the surrounding area, the
position in relation to surrounding
landmarks, and distances to
major cities, rivers, and coastlines. He described
the different
types of lighting systems on the airfield and the basic layout of
the
estate. "You think you can spot it?"
"Well, there is one thing you could do to make it easier."
"What's that?"
"When I'm about to arrive, could you stand
out in the open somewhere and hold up
your sword?"
"Okay, so tomorrow night then?"
Ryoko wanted to go there right now, but remembered Washuu's offer.
"Yep, 10 o'clock your time?"
"Sounds good! I think you'll really like it here."
"I'll like anywhere as long as I can be with you."
Tenchi blushed. He had mixed feelings about this
upcoming visit, but he had kept
her waiting too long already, and
he really did miss her.
"I love you. See you tomorrow night."
"Love you too my Tenchi, get lots of sleep tonight."
CLICK
Ryoko heard Sasami busy in the
kitchen. Nobody else was up yet. She phased over to
help make
breakfast.
"Good Morning Ryoko!"
"Hi Sasami! What are we making this morning?"
Sasami started
describing the procedures for making the morning meal. As she
named
different ingredients Ryoko quickly obtained them and the
necessary pots, pans, and
utensils. Ryoko had learned enough that
she was doing half of the work now. She
hummed a merry tune as she
chopped vegetables and stirred a pot.
"You sure are in a good mood today Ryoko, what's up?"
Ryoko realized that nobody had heard the phone call that morning, so much the better.
"Well, I'll let you in on a little sercet, if you promise not to tell anyone."
"I promise!"
Ryoko leaned over the little girl and whispered "I have no sense of taste."
Sasami looked up at her sadly, "I kind of
guessed that, Ryoko. That's terrible.
But why are you in such a
good mood?"
"Washuu said she would fix it for me!"
"Really! Wow! We'll have to think of something special to do when you get it back!"
"That sounds good to me!"
They finished making breakfast together and
set out the table. Sasami went upstairs
to let everyone know while
Ryoko went down to the lab to find Washuu.
"Mom!"
Washuu appeared out of nowhere on her floating cushion. "What's up."
"Breakfast is ready."
"Anything else?"
Ryoko wanted to ask, but was afraid that Washuu would realize the implications.
"Um, remember when you said you could restore my sense of taste and...other things?"
"And you said you wanted to experience them first with Tenchi around?"
Ryoko winced, then looked down at the floor.
"Don't worry, I won't tell."
Ryoko
looked up and saw Washuu beaming at her. She grabbed her petite
mother up
in a big hug. "You didn't really think you could
keep a secret from me did you?"
"I guess not Mom, thanks!"
She put her down and Washu produced a needle out
of nowhere. "Okay, after I give
you this injection, you
should have all the physiological blocks removed from
your system
within twelve hours." Ryoko began rolling up her sleeve.
"But I must warn you first. You have to accept the good with the bad."
"What do you mean?"
"Well,
you'll get your sense of taste, but you will find out that some
things
don't taste good to you. You will also get a burning
sensation in your mouth
from really spicy foods."
"That's no big deal, I'll just have to watch what I eat."
"There's
also the side affect of removing the block that prevents sensations
of
physical pleasure. It will make you feel pain more acutely as
well."
"So in other words, I'll be more like a normal person?"
Washuu smiled, "You can say that,
yes. I just wanted to forewarn you. We also
have a long overdue
mother/daughter talk to have."
Ryoko turned red, "MOM! I know that stuff already!"
"Do you? What do you
really know, hmm? Remember, I know, okay? My link with
you,"
She tapped her forehead with her finger, "Just let me give you a
few pointers.
Those videos you stole from Noboyuki aren't the best
thing to use as guidance."
Ryoko then turned a deeper
shade of red. She didn't know if she wanted this
conversation, but
part of her was curious. "How about later today instead,
breakfast
is ready."
"Sure thing! But first let me give you this shot"
Ryoko sat quietly during the meal,
glancing occasionally at Aeka. She was wondering
how she would
explain her disappearance when she got back. They were all going
out
again Friday night, and she didn't want the princess all bent
out of shape, ruining
the evening. "Say, Mihoshi? Have you
put in for vacation yet?"
"Um..no, I was going to after breakfast."
"Mind if I tag along?"
"No! It'll be fun!"
After breakfast the two went out to
Yukinojo and headed off into space to the GP docking
station out
by Saturn.
"Okay, when we get there, you have to stay out of sight when I make the call to my boss."
"No problem. Guess what Mihoshi! I'm going to visit Tenchi!"
"No Way! Really! How are you going to find him?"
"He told me where he was! He wants to see me!"
"Oh Ryoko, I'm so happy for you!"
"There's one small problem, I don't know how to explain disappearing for a few days."
"What about those guys you met? You could just say you were hanging out with them."
"That might work."
"Oh, Ryoko, could you do me a favor and bring breakfast to...him?"
They had brought a prepared
tray from Sasami for Morai. Ryoko took it back to the
holding
cell.
Morai could tell he was in space again from the motion
of the ship. He had felt the
shock of take-off and questions about
his fate flooded his mind. First and foremost
he thought the time
had come for them to get rid of him. As he dwelt on the
darker
thoughts Ryoko showed up with breakfast. This one seemed
the most likely to get some
information from, as she acted very
comfortable around him. She deactivated the force
field door and
stepped inside with the tray and handed it to him, "Here ya
go!"
He took it and she picked up the old tray. Whenever
she did that she made a point of
turning her back to him to see if
he'd try anything. If she killed the guy in 'self
defense' he
wouldn't be a problem for Mihoshi anymore. Once again, he
disappointed
her. This was an especially big disappointment
because she could have taken care of
him without Sasami having to
see it. Instead, he talked, "So where are we off
to
today."
Ryoko looked over her shoulder with an evil smile, "A GP substation."
This woman had already
told him she wasn't GP. A bounty hunter maybe? No, why would
bounty
hunters risk so much to save a caravan? It only added to his
confusion.
"Do you have a name at least?"
"Yeah." She didn't elaborate further.
Sighing he said, "What do I call you then?"
She thought for a moment before giving him an evil smile, "You can call me Demon"
Something in her eyes frightened him, and he got a feeling of deja vu.
Laughing, she walked out of his cell and reactivated the force field.
Mihoshi's boss was more than happy to grant her
request. He felt that she would
be less likely to do any damage
while on vacation, and if she did, the GP wouldn't
be responsible.
He did ask her for a report on the incident with the caravan, and
she
promised to have it as soon as her vacation was over.
On the
way back, Ryoko started feeling unfamiliar sensations. At first they
were
so faint that she thought it was her imagination, but as time
went on she could
not ignore them. The first thing she noticed was
an uncomfortable feeling in her
butt. Standing up made it go away.
Then she noticed a strange feeling in her
mouth. Realization hit -
the shot from Washuu was starting to work.
They made it back
in time for lunch, which Ryoko was really excited about. She
could
finally taste, although the sensation was kind of faint. Everyone
noticed
she was eating very slowly, concentration writ large
across her face. Only Washuu
and Sasami knew why. Aeka was
perplexed about this newest change in behavior as
always. Everyone
was too occupied with Ryoko's change to notice Sasami
slipping
away.
Morai could feel the ship settling back down
for landing, wondering where they had
brought him to now. It was
all very unsettling, not knowing where you stood and
being
powerless to change the situation. All the information he had gotten
so far
had only raised more questions. But today, he was going to
get a break. The
little girl showed up, by herself for a change.
Adrenalin began to flood into his
bloodstream. Then he got a hold
of himself, realizing now was not the time to
leap without
looking. She looked at him with that curious stare again, and
placed
the tray on the ground right next to the force field. Morai
leaned against the
wall on the far side of the cell from the door.
"Hello there little one!" He said
in his most charming
voice.
"Hello" Sasami answered hesitantly.
"What's your name?"
"I'm sorry, but I don't think I'm supposed to talk to you."
"What harm could there possibly be in telling me your name?"
"Well, I don't
know...but if you promise not to try anything when I open the
door
I'll tell you."
"Okay."
Sasami
deactivated the force field, slid the tray through, and reactivated
it.
Smiling at performing this duty on her own, she said, "Well,
I promised, and
you behaved. My name is Sasami."
That's
a nice name. Could you tell me which one of you ladies prepares
these
wonderful meals for me?"
Deciding no harm could possible come from answering that question, "I do."
"Well thank you, I think this is the best I've ever eaten in my whole life."
Sasami beamed at this, "Well, I have to get going now, see you at dinner!"
With that she was gone, (Sasami...Sasami...where have I heard that name?)
It was
a start, perhaps with time she would open up to him more. He would
have
to be on his best behavior.
Sasami snuck back inside,
then realized she had left the old tray behind. Sighing,
she began
cleaning up from lunch.
Washuu had Ryoko down in the lab,
giving her a progress check on her developing
senses. "So you
now have a faint sense of taste? Notice anything else?"
Washuu
asked while typing away on her holo computer. "Well, I
get a uncomfortable
feeling when I sit too long."
"That's
only normal. You'll notice alot of discomfort now that you couldn't
feel
before. That's another drawback."
After running a
full check, Washuu was happy with the results. Everything was
going
as she had predicted. Ryoko left the lab to help Sasami finish
cleaning.
Afterwards, she went to find Aeka. She ran into her on
the way to the baths,
and asked if she would have a drink with her
there. Once relaxed in the water
with a tray of Sake between them,
Ryoko decided to have a little talk.
"Um...Aeka. Sorry
about cutting you off and disappearing last night. It's just
that
stuff is kind of hard to talk about."
"I see. I suppose it would be difficult to understand anyway."
"Well, you might not want to understand. Even understanding it can be painful."
"If you don't mind me asking, why were you acting so strangely at lunchtime?"
Ryoko brightened and
said, "Well, I can tell you about this now because it's
about
to change. For as long as I could remember, I could never taste
anything
I ate, and now, Washuu fixed it so that could. That was
the first meal I had
since she gave me a shot, and I'm just now
beginning to feel the effects."
"You couldn't taste anything?" Aeka was horrified.
"Well, no. But I'm starting to!"
Aeka poured Ryoko the first shot of Sake
she would ever taste, wondering what
other horrible things have
been done to this woman she had misunderstood for
so
long.
Mihoshi was stretched out on a towel by the lake shore,
dressed in a bikini and
sunbathing. If this was going to be a
vacation, she would act like it. She
laid back, forcing all the
unpleasant thoughts of her predicament out of her
mind. After
twenty minutes, she flipped over onto her back to tan the other
side.
It was then through closed eyelids that she saw that something was
shading
her. She opened her eyes to see Katsuhito Masaki blocking
out the sun.
"Oh, hi Grandfather!"
Yosho smiled down at her.
"Hello. I was wondering if you would
like to talk about the recent events in
space. I'd like to offer
any assistance possible in helping you."
Yosho had always
liked Mihoshi. She was such a kind sweet person, if just not
all
there all the time. He always wondered what the reason was for
the way she acted.
Unlike the others, who viewed her as a
bubblehead, he saw through to what seemed
to be behavior that
spoke something that happened in her past, that she hadn't come
to
grips with yet, and was hiding her pain away under a facade of
happiness and
pleasantness. And now, she had even more pain to
deal with.
"Well...um...thanks, but I'd rather not think about it right now."
"I fear the longer you wait in
dealing with things, the graver the situation may
become. Whenever
you are ready to face these problems, I will be waiting."
With that he walked off, leaving her to think alone.
Washuu was
working in her lab, doing a little bit of final tuning to her
latest
project. She was just about finished with the special
training swords for Yosho.
She decided to deliver them herself,
since she hadn't been up to the shrine for
a while. Upon reaching
the top of the steps, she found that nobody was around.
Shrugging,
she tucked away one of the swords and activated the other. A
silvery
fluid began to flow up out of the hilt, to solidify into a
shimmering katana
blade. Little random waves flowed back and forth
across the surface, so that it
maintained it's liquid look. She
swung it a few times experimentally, getting a
feel for the heft
of the blade. Then she went through a sword routine that she
knew,
but couldn't remember where she had learned it. Yosho appeared when
she
was about halfway through it, and watched silently. He had
seen this routine once
before, but could not remember where. Then
she was finished.
"So, Washuu, you are still full of suprises."
Washuu jerked her head around, feeling slightly embarrased, "Er, I suppose."
"May I ask where you learned that particular kata?"
"Oh,
I'm not sure. It's been a while you see." She wanted to change
the subject,
because she didn't ever discuss the holes in her
memory. "I brought you a present!"
"Oh, and to what do I owe this honor?"
Washuu tossed him the hilt of
the other sword. He examined it carefully. "So, how
do I
activate it?"
"Just twist the ring near the hilt until it clicks."
He did and the silvery blade emerged from his sword.
"So how do they work?"
Washuu grinned evilly, "Like this."
She turned into her
adult form and launched a spinning attack on Yosho, her hair
flailing
about wildly. He was almost caught off guard, almost. By
spinning,
her massive mane of red hair served to block his view of
her sword hand as she
lunged. He barely caught her blade on his in
a block, and the distinct sound of
metal clanging on metal echoed
down from the mountain across the valley. Yosho
was suprised by
the power and skill behind her attack, yet another hidden facet
of
the great scientist was revealed. Yosho found himself on the defense
for
quite some time, before holes in her defenses began to appear
to him. He saw
an opening, but was unsure of what the blade would
do. After passing up a few
strikes Washuu jumped back, circling
warily. "What's the matter old man? Why
are you holding
back?" It was then that he realized that those openings
were
merely to bait him into a deadly trap. Her technique was very
refined and
deceptive. He would have to be very careful. Then
Washuu jumped at him again.
Her wild attack kept him on the
defensive. He resolved to strike at her next
opening to see what
would happen. He was suprised to see an orange energy blade
like
Ryoko's casually bat his sword aside as her other blade swung about
for the
killing blow.
Meanwhile, back at the baths,
"Ugh!!! That tastes awful! How could I have been
drinking so much of that nasty
stuff for so long! It can't be good
for you!"
Aeka laughed, "Oh my! I guess it's an
acquired taste darling. Although, you
never did really have much
'taste!"
Ryoko gritted her teeth, but said nothing (I
resolved to be nicer...I promised
to be nicer...oh screw
it!)
Ryoko used her power to produce a massive wave of water
to slam into Aeka. She
emerged spluttering into her hair which was
plastered all over her face.
"you'll pay for that!"
Summoning her own powers, she used her force field
to lift a huge amount of water
over top of Ryoko as she sat there
laughing. She looked up just in time to see
an indoor version of
Niagra Falls bearing down on her.
WHOOSH!!!
After the
pool settled a bit Aeka waited for Ryoko to surface. When she
didn't
immediately appear, she began to worry. "Ryoko?"
She looked down into the water,
and realized her mistake too late.
Hovering above her, the undrowned ex-pirate
released a 100 gallon
glob of ice water onto the unsuspecting
princess.
"AHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!"
"That's
what you get for making fun of my handicaps." The freezing cold
took the
fight out of Aeka, and as Ryoko looked at the goosebumped
shivering princess, she
felt a pang of guilt. She grabbed a big
fluffy towel and wrapped it around Aeka.
"Sorry, I got a little carried away there."
"It's alright, I was
beginning to miss our 'little' fights there for a while."
(Then
again, now that you have all your gems back, I'm not really a match
for
you am I?) Aeka wasn't really thrilled the first time she
noticed the other
two gems on Ryoko during Tenchi's going away
party. She wondered if their
return had anything to do with the
changes she had noticed in her rival.
"How about we give
Joey and Greg a call to see what they are doing this weekend?
We
have those tickets and free dinners." Ryoko asked
hopefully.
Aeka signed, "Oh, alright. But you make the
call. I'm going to get something
hot to drink." With that
said, she excused herself from the baths.
And back at the shrine,
Yosho felt a stunning jolt of electricity pass through
his body from his right
shoulder to his left side as Washuu's
blade passed through him. He looked
up to see her standing there
with the two different swords, with a big grin on
her face.
Feeling around the still numb areas, he was relieved to find
himself
uninjured.
"Had you going there for a minute, didn't I?"
Yosho didn't know what to be more amazed at,
her besting him or his lack of
injury. "Interesting training
tool you have made." Was all he could manage to
say.
"Oh, you haven't seen anything yet! Let me show you some of the other features!"
Like an enthusiastic child showing off her
latest school project, Washuu back in
her child form demonstrated
the swords versatility.
"I've loaded several different
blade templates into the swords memory, see this,"
She
twisted another ring with a click and the blade changed from a katana
to the
short straight blade of the ninjato, then with another
click it changed into a
curved middle eastern style scimitar.
"Now, all these blades act like normal steel
blades or energy
blades," She demonstrated by removing a weed growing up
from
between the paving stones, "Except when they encounter
living flesh. Then they
become a simple electric field that gives
you a little shock." Yosho rubbed the
area where the sword
had passed through, not exactly agreeing with the 'little'
shock
part. "And now here's the best part! First you hold down this
button here
while twisting the activation ring..." Suddenly
the waves stopped flowing
across the blade, which now appeared to
be a solid steel. "Be careful when they
are in this mode.
They are just as lethal now as any energy or steel blade."
Washuu
stood there beaming, proud of her latest invention. Deactivating
the
weapon from solid blade mode, she tossed the second hilt to
Yosho. He looked
at the two now inert weapons. "Excellent,
now I can get back to sparring."
Washuu frowned, remembering
her daughters upcoming absence. "Well, Katsuhito
dear, if you
ever need a bit of variety when sparring, feel free to call on
me!"
With a flirtatious grin over her shoulder, she took off
down the steps.
"Hello?"
"Hey Joey, it's Ryoko."
"Oh, hi! What's up?"
"Well,
Aeka and I and another friend wanted to see what you guys were up to
this
weekend. You know we have those Disney tickets and free
dinners!"
Joey smiled at the thought of seeing the girls
again. "Well, we didn't have
anything planned. How does
Saturday sound? We could make a day of it, Disney
during the day,
then we can go to dinner afterwards."
"Great, where should we meet you?"
"How about your place?"
(Bad
idea,) "Well, it's in the opposite direction from your place to
Disney, so
how about we just meet you at yours?"
"Okay, give us a call the day before and we'll give you directions."
"Cool! Say hi to Greg for me. See you later!"
"Bye."
That being taken care
of, Ryoko went to help Sasami start dinner.
"So what are we
making tonight kiddo?" She asked while patting
her little
friend on the back.
"Well, you are beginning to taste, aren't you?"
Ryoko nodded with a big smile.
"Well,
how about...some fried shumai, harumaki, and chicken teriyaki?
Do
you remember how to make the dumplings?"
"I think so."
"Okay, you do the shumai and I'll start on the others."
The two worked side by side until the
meal was ready. This time at dinner,
Ryoko didn't have to
concentrate, since her sense of taste was about ninety
percent
there. It was all good to her, especially in contrast to the
awful
alcoholic taste of the sake. Before when she ate, the only
satisfaction she
had was the feeing of being full when she stuffed
herself. This flavor thing
brought on a whole new dimension. She
ate slowly, deliberately. Savoring
every single morsel. This time,
Aeka understood the behavior, and for once,
was happy for
Ryoko.
After dinner, Washuu grabbed Ryoko and pulled her into
her lab. "Uh, I have
to help Sasami finish
cleaning..."
"No, I have to run some tests, and have that little talk with you."
"Mom!"
"No you just sit there like a good little girl..."
Washuu brought some scanning equipment online and ran through some diagnostics.
"Good...good...very good! How do you feel?"
"Better."
"Notice anything different today?"
"Yeah, my butt gets sore when I sit for too long."
"Told you there would be some drawbacks."
"I'm fine with it."
"Now, let me let you about the birds and the bees."
"MOM! I told you that I know about that stuff!"
"I know
that you understand the mechanics, but let me tell you what to expect
now.
It will be different than what you think. Now first of
all..."
Tenchi
woke to the sound of thunder. It was pouring outside. He sat
up,
yawning and stretching. Finding the hidden door to the baths,
he soaked
for a while. He thought about the coming evening, hoping
the weather would
clear up in time. If not, he'd have to call
Ryoko and tell her to wait
another night. It was not a call he
wanted to make. Getiing out of the
bath, he sat down in front of
the computer desk in his room. He could see
that Art was
thoughtful enough to set him up with a Japanese version PC.
Time
to write more letters, he decided. The first to his Dad,
Dear Dad,
You should see this place I'm staying at now. This guy
has his own
airport in his backyard. I'm sure you could really
appreciate it from
an architectural point of view. You would
especially like the hospitality
here, I think Art had you in mind
instead of me when he set things up. I
have been having fun, and
learning alot. Don't work too hard, and I'll
write you again next
week.
Then a quick letter to Jichan,
Dear Grandfather,
Thank you for arranging this trip. I see what you
mean now by changing
sparring partners. I'd almost forgotten what
wearing kendo armor was
like. I think I need to work on my empty
hand techniques with you more
when I get back. Have a good
week.
Then he considered the woman he might actually call
Mom someday, the
possibility of that made him laugh.
Dear Washuu,
I'd really like to thank you for the phone and the
picture you gave me
to take along. It really means alot to me. I'm
having a great time
out here. I was really glad to see you and
Ryoko getting closer before
I left. Take good care of her for me,
would you? Good luck with all
your experiments!
Tenchi
printed out the letters, and sealed them in individual envelopes.
He
got dressed and started roaming the halls. The minute he had left
his
room he was flanked by Rei and Emi. "Anything we can do
for you this
morning Tenchi?"
"Yes, first, I need to mail off these letters, and then get some breakfast."
Rei
took the letters and went one way while Emi led Tenchi to the
dining
area. Another buffet was set out, with mainly western foods
like eggs,
bacon, and pancakes, with a smattering of Japanese and
Chinese dishes.
A cook was there in case he wanted eggs cooked to
order.
"Good morning! I'm not too familiar with this, do you have a recommendation?"
The cook smiled, "Well, I make a mean western omlette!"
"Okay, I'll try that."
The cook quickly produced the omlette while Tenchi
picked through some other
dishes. Returning to the cook's station
he asked, "I guess you guys eat
pretty well here."
"Oh
yeah! Especially when Mr. Hamilton is entertaining guests. He
usually
has a more modest buffet when he is here alone, but it is
still enough to
feed us all."
"You like working for Art?"
"Mr. Hamilton? He takes really good care of his people, sure!"
The breakfast was really good.
Tenchi thanked the cook for the excellent
omlette and wandered off
through the spacious mansion. He ran into Alan
in one of the
numerous corridors.
"Hey Alan! What's there to do around here?"
"What are you in the mood for sir?"
"Oh please. not sir, just Tenchi, alright?"
"Alan smiled, of course Tenchi. Now, what are you in the mood for?"
"Well...I'd like to exercise later, but
right now I'd like to see the
sights around here."
"I know just the thing then Tenchi."
The storms had blown
through the area quickly, leaving the sky clear and
the air cool
and damp, and a little breezy. Tenchi was relieved at this.
Alan
led him to the garage where the jeep was kept. Rei and Emi showed
up
along the way and they drove out to the airfield. As they got
closer,
Tenchi spotted a helicopter coming in for a landing. They
pulled up next
to the hangar as the blades of the chopper slowly
ceased rotating. The
pilots hopped out and began a post flight
check. Alan approached them,
"Say Marty, our young guest here
would like a tour of the estate, care to
indulge him?"
"Sure, just give us about fifteen minutes."
Alan explained to
Tenchi that Art commuted to New York City everyday using
this
helicopter. They had just returned from dropping him off this
morning.
The pilot indicated that they could wait aboard while
they prepped for the
flight. Tenchi was amazed at the equipment
Art had installed on the aircraft.
Besides the three computer
terminals, there was a video conferencing system,
wet bar, and a
TV. Rei and Emi got comfortable on a couch like seat while
the
pilots fired the engines up. The chopper leapt into the air and
began
to slowly circle the estate while Alan pointed out the
swimming pools, tennis
courts, trap and skeet ranges, the golf
course, and others. "So you see, you
have no reason to be
bored while you are here!" Art said to Tenchi through
the
headsets they all now wore. The countryside surrounding the estate
was
simply beautiful. Tenchi thought he would like to walk around
it some time.
Back on the ground, he thanked the pilots for
the ride, and they all rode
with Alan back to the house. Tenchi
thought of Ryoko, and how much they
would be able to do together
while she was
visiting.
"I
was beginning to think you had forgotten to train today,"
Katsuhito said
as Ryoko materialized in front of him.
"No, sorry. Mom had a few things she had to do with me first."
"No matter. COme now, let's try out these wonderful new inventions of hers."
He tossed her one of the new training swords. She
examined it curiously,
while he instructed her on its use. She
activated the blade, and Katsuhito
made sure to note that both
blades had the fluid wavy appearance that was
to indicate the
swords were in training mode. Squaring off from each other,
they
began. Ryoko attacked first, and Katsuhito was glad to see that
the
weapons held up through their first exchange. Yosho was
starting to be
worn down from her sheer strength however. To
compensate, he allowed just
enough Jurai power to flow into him to
compensate. Ryoko sensed this and
smirked, "Too much for you
now, eh old man?" Yosho wasn't about to be
bested twice in
one day. He was mindful of the fact that Ryoko had a spare
sword
she could produce on demand as well. She stayed within the
training
rules set forth, however. Her technique was very good,
but still not as
refined as his. Yosho also had much experience to
draw upon. He saw a few
openings in her guard, but chose not to
take advantage of them yet. They
backed off and circled each other
warily after their third exchange. Ryoko
smiled at him cockily.
"You have learned much in one week Ryoko, but there
is much
remaining." With that said he leapt at her. In a brief
exchange
he took advantage of the first opening she left him.
Ryoko felt the shock
of electricity pass through her, for her
first real taste of pain since her
senses were fixed.
"YAHHHHHHHHHHH!!!!!!!!!"
The sword clattered noisily
to the ground, dropped from nerveless fingers.
She clutched her
side with both hands as she dropped to her knees and
doubled over.
Katsuhito looked down at her, concerned, but not allowing
it to
show on his face. After a minute, she looked up at him, with tears
of
pain running down her cheeks. He offered her his hand, which she
took
to help her stand. "I think that's enough for one day
Ryoko." She nodded
in silent agreement. She sat to rest for a
moment on the steps of the
shrine. "Actually, I'd like to
skip a couple days if you don't mind."
"It would
probably be better if you started right back at it. Waiting
too
long can add resolve to reluctance."
"It's not just
that. I have something I'd like to do that will keep me
away for a
couple days."
"As long as you don't distract Tenchi from his training too much."
Ryoko looked up in suprise.
Yosho hadn't really known, just suspected,
and the look she gave
confirmed his suspicions. "How did you...?"
Yosho
held up a hand, "Just do not distract him too much. You two
have
alot to catch up on, just try not to all at once."
Ryoko turned bright red, "How do you...?"
"I've
seen it in him for quite some time, even if he didn't see it
in
himself. I may be old, but I'm not blind."
"You aren't angry at him for calling for me?"
"Angry? No.
I'm happy for him. For both of you. I knew this might
happen. I
sent him away for many reasons. One of which was to give
him a
different perspective on things."
"You won't tell
Aeka, will you? Tenchi wanted to wait until he got back
to tell
her himself."
"I will remain silent, as I do on most other matters. Good night Ryoko."
With that said, he
turned and walked back to the shrine, leaving a still
suprised
Ryoko standing there. Now she had to figure out what to say to
Sasami
to explain her time away. She really didn't want to lie to her
little
friend. In the end, she decided to use Katsuhito's way and simply
say
nothing. Phasing back to the house, she joined Aeka, Sasami,
and
Mihoshi on the couch to watch TV until
bedtime.
Tenchi
decided to go for a swim in the large outdoor pool. Rei and Emi
hung
out at the pools edge sunbathing while he swam laps. He didn't go
at
it too hard, not wanting to wear himself out before the evening
time
training session with Art. After an hour at the pool he went
to his
room to change, then sat at the computer and looked up the
current news
and weather from back home. Once again he found
himself wondering what
he would do after graduating school.
Considering his extravagant
surroundings, he didn't think he would
ever want or need this much. Of
course, if he had fallen in love
with Aeka instead, he would have had
the royal palace on Jurai as
his future home. (No, that's not the life
for me. Too much
responsibility. Besides, I don't think I would be
regarded too
highly given my choice of girlfriend.) Still being a little
out of
whack from all the traveling and time zone changes, he dozed off
in
an early afternoon
nap.
It was a nightmare...
They were back on the Souyja, fighting.
She was incapacitated, Kagato had
her by the head.
"It's
a pity Ryoko that you won't live to see me as the ruler of the
entire
universe."
Tenchi was dead, Kagato was tapping all her strength. It seemed hopeless.
"I'm sorry...Tenchi."
(Ryoko moaned in her sleep from the rafter.)
Then the bright blue light, cutting through Kagato.
Then, unbelieveably, he was there. (Whew, I'm just in time.)
Feeling an arm wrapped around her protectively, she
looked up at
stunned, at the man she loved. "Are you
real?"
Looking back down at her lovingly, "I'm no ghost!"
Kagato sneered, "Didn't think you were still alive kid."
Anger welled up within him, looking over at
the evil one who would dare try
hurt the one he loved. Time for
business. He took his time, setting her
down carefully. "No
Tenchi, don't!"
He just smiled at her, "Now I'll be
fine." And for some reason, it wasn't
just a simple
reassurance. He knew it to be true.
"Well, what do you plan to do?" Kagato asked sarcastically.
Tenchi gave him
a look, and Ryoko could see that that look held no mercy.
And
seeing him like that gave her an unfamiliar warm feeling in the
pit
of her stomach. That look he gave was reserved for those who
would dare
try to harm her.
Then for the third time, Tenchi
attacked Kagato to save her. And for the
third time, Kagato was
wiping the floor with him. No matter how hopeless
it seemed, he
just kept attacking...for her. Then Kagato had Tenchi
in his
grasp. "If only you had left these women behind you could
have
remained alive."
To Tenchi, this was unthinkable,
"I would rather die than forsake any one
of them."
Kagato simply laughed, hurling him away. Tenchi was beneath his notice now.
(Tenchi tossed and turned in his sleep, "No...No!")
Now that he was tapped into the full
power of the gems. They could both
sense the immense power
emanating from the evil one, the three gems equaled
Tsunami in
strength. Kagato would use this to pull in the Ship of Jurai,
sealing
the fate of the Universe. Tenchi refused to believe it. But he
was
losing hope. Then he remembered what Tsunami had told him, and
found the
resolve to get up again. Kagato noticed him, a little
suprised.
"How can you have any power left?"
(My own power) "I have been relying on this sword too much."
"I
was going to finish you later but why not now?"
Kagato raised
his hand to send a blast at him.
(This sword is useless here.
My own power...) Tenchi dropped the master
key, discarding it.
It was useless here.
"So, you're giving up?"
His
attention was focused entirely on Kagato, then, faintly, he heard
her,
"Tenchi run, get away!" Then heard her plead with
Kagato, the merciless
one who used and tortured her for thousands
of years. Strong, proud Ryoko
begging for his life. "Stop,
please don't, you've got everything you wanted,
please spare him."
And the anger towards the one before him grew even more,
as did
his own power.
"Can this boy really mean that much to
you, well not to worry. Very soon you
and Pricess Aeka will join
him very soon indeed, you won't be alone in
death."
"Nooooooooo!!!!!!!!"
The power
swelled inside him even more, and he stood there, almost
serenely.
Kagato sent a blast towards him, and he felt the power
in him surge incredibly.
It was so powerful it made him gasp as
his eyes widened, and he barely noticed
that the blast never made
it to him, so strong was the force within him. Then
the smoke
cleared.
"Now it's your turn." Kagato said as he
turned to the crushed Ryoko, thinking
she had seen him killed
again.
"Impossible, I thought the power from Tsunami was completely cut off."
Ryoko looked up and saw Tenchi, with that look again.
"It's you!" Kagato screamed in disbelief.
Ryoko watched as Tenchi went through his transformation.
"It's you, your creating all this!" Kagato yelled before attacking.
Tenchi stood there and for the
forth and final time, fought Kagato. It was
different this time.
Kagato was cut in half.
"You've won boy."
Ryoko
ran to Tenchi and he grabbed her, pulling her close to him as his
light
hawk wings disappeared. He looked her in the eyes, those
golden eyes that stole
his heart so long ago, before he could even
remember, "Ryoko listen...there's
something I have to tell
you. I've realized that I've loved you for a long time
now, and I
wanted you to know before another moment passed. I've waited too
long
as it is. It will be too long before I can tell you in
person. As I realized it
finally, I wanted to say it, I needed to
say it to you, because delaying any longer
would have torn me up
inside. I love you, Ryoko, I love you."
Tears of joy streamed down her cheeks, "Tenchi, I love you so much..."
(Tenchi woke from his nap, noticing his arms were empty.)
(Ryoko settled down into a very restful sleep.
The nightmares would begin to
slowly lessen from that moment
onward, and every night, they would turn into
a dream come true
towards the
end.)
(Wow,
that was an intense dream!) Tenchi thought. A dream that combined
two
important events in his life. He sat up and stretched,
deciding it was time
for lunch. He wasn't especially hungry, but
he couldn't think of anything
else to do. Walking down the hall,
he was soon flanked by Rei and Emi. "Do
you two just wait fo
me all the time?"
"Yes!" They replied in unison.
Tenchi merely sighed, hoping they would cease the
escort duty before Ryoko came
by. He felt he had to warn them
eventually. He ate a light lunch, which seemed
a pity since there
was so much food to be had. Alan joined them all for the
mid-day
meal, as Rei and Emi ate with Tenchi when Art wasn't around. "Say,
Alan,
can you take me out to see some of those ranges we saw after
lunch?" Tenchi
thought of all the things to do here, Ryoko
might enjoy shooting.
"Yes Tenchi, let me get things set
up." He made a phone call, and after lunch,
they rode in the
jeep out to the trap and skeet range.
Alan showed Tenchi the
basics of the fine art of blasting clay flying discs from
the air.
Tenchi was a little intimidated by the shotgun, and at first
concentrated
more on simply firing it without being knocked back
than hitting the target. Soon
his familiarity increased, and he
began to hit some of them. After about an hour
on the range, he
was able to hit about half the targets.
"That's quite an
improvement in one day. You say you've never handled a
shotgun
before?"
"No, it's all very new to me."
Tenchi felt an ache in his shoulder from firing the
gun. He rubbed it with his
left hand while moving his right arm in
circles, "Oh...maybe this wasn't such a
good idea."
Rei and Emi stepped up, "Would you like a massage now Tenchi?"
"Uh, no thank you. I'll just put some ice on this, and maybe take some aspirin."
Back at the house, Tenchi took two aspirin and
rested in his room with an icepack
on his shoulder, regretting the
first big mistake he had made that week.
Larry (or Art as
he was known to people who couldn't properly pronounce 'L')
was
inbound in his chopper from the city. Patching the telephone to his
headset,
he informed Alan that he would be home by 5:30, and
recommended that Tenchi have
a light early dinner, because he was
anxious to get started. Art himself had
grabbed a sandwich to go
before boarding the sleek Eurocopter. Alan in turn
placed a call
to Tenchi's room. He sat up suprised at the ring.
"Hello?"
"Hello
Tenchi. Mr. Hamilton will be home in an hour. Could I bring you
something
light to eat?"
Tenchi was kind of hungry
because of his light lunch. "Yes please, how
about...
pizza?"
"Very good, I'll bring it up in twenty minutes."
Tenchi had two slices and a big glass of water.
Alan brought him a brand new gi to wear as well.
After eating, he led Tenchi to
Art's training room. "Mr.
Hamilton will be here shortly," Alan said while
departing.
Tenchi sat, and began meditation.
The chopper dropped Art off
at the house near his training room, and he dashed
inside,
changing quickly. Other than the Tournament, this was the highlight
of
his life. He walked in and saw Tenchi meditating, so he sat
down quietly across
from him and began himself. They meditated
together for twenty minutes. Art
concentrated on controlling his
eagerness, and Tenchi contemplated his shoulder.
At Ernesto's
dojo, Tenchi had considered him the Sensei, who would signal the
end
of meditation. He didn't feel the same way here, but didn't want to
presume
anything, so he waited for Art to signal the end. Art felt
that he was the lesser
one here, so he waited for Tenchi to signal
the end. Eventually, Art's eagerness
got the better of him.
"Alright."
They went through a series of warm up
exercises, Tenchi concentrated on working
his shoulder.
"So what's your pleasure, Tenchi? Bokken, Kendo?"
"Bokken thank you."
From a wall covered with all manner of asian
hand weapons, Art selected two very
fine hardwood bokken. He bowed
to Tenchi, handing one over. Tenchi felt the
heft of the weapon,
suppressing a wince from the soreness in his shoulder. It
was kind
of funny how he hadn't really felt the soreness while shooting
until
it was too late.
They faced off, circling each other
slowly, studying each others slightest movements.
Art moved in
first. He was stronger and faster than Ernesto, and his technique
was
solid. The shoulder pain slowed Tenchi's movements. He began
to compensate by giving
ground or shuffling sideways. Tenchi began
to pick up on Art's technique and timing.
Just when he thought he
had it, Art changed it, picking up the pace with more speed
and
power. Tenchi found himself giving ground now, and wishing he was a
lefty. (Well,
why not? Grandfather made me practice with my left
enough.) Deciding to try it, he
quickly shuffled sideways,
switching hands. Art noticed this, and it threw off his
timing a
little bit. Tenchi wasn't as skilled fighting this way, but he got
his speed
back. Art was kind of glad, because he needed practice
fighting like this, as the
number one fighter in the Tournament
was a lefty. Tenchi began to get his timing again,
and before Art
could change pace on him, he struck. Tenchi went to block a full
power
downward slash from Art by catching it squarely on his own
blade, but shifted the last
instant, allowing Arts blade to slide
down his, deflected. This caused Art to overextend
himself
slightly, which Tenchi took full advantage of, bringing his own
weapon down on
Arts left shoulder. Art then backed off. Both
combatants were breathing heavily. Art
didn't take defeat well,
but was consoled by the fact that he had held up against
Tenchi
better than he had expected to. Tenchi was disappointed in
himself for not being up to
his full potential for his host. Art
rubbed his own now sore shoulder and asked, "Again?"
Tenchi
nodded. Art increased the ferocity of his attack, hoping to take
advantage of his
superior size and strength. Tenchi fell back
again, and decided to switch hands back and
go for using more
advanced technique this time. Tenchi was mainly concentrating
on
deflecting the others blade rather than meeting it squarely.
Art expected Tenchi to try
to feint again by pretending to meet it
squarely, then deflecting last instant, or not
deflecting it and
trying something different. Tenchi did neither. Instead, Tenchi
was
watching the other man's stance, watching for potential
imbalance. He began to notice
that whenever he shuffled sideways,
Art would loosen his stance as he turned to face him.
Deciding to
use this to his advantage, as Art pressed his attack, Tenchi shuffled
to the
side again and as Art turned with a downward strike Tenchi
simultaneously blocked and
shuffled forward, then brutally drove
his hip into Art. As he started to fall backwards
Art brought his
sword and both arms quickly back over his head to balance himself
as
Tenchi dropped to one knee, delivering a slash across Art's
midsection.
After backing up and catching his breath Art said, "Okay, okay. Where did I go wrong?"
Tenchi had to
catch his own breath first, while contemplating the answer. "Well,
first
of all, I think you use too much power. I believe you could
improve greatly by working
on your economy of motion. Second, your
stance while turning is a little weak."
"Really? Okay, how should I correct this?"
Tenchi was unaccustomed
to teaching, but as his Grandfather once told him, "Sometimes
you
can learn more about a technique by teaching it than practicing
it."
Together, they came up with a simple drill to work
on the stance, and they ran through
it a few times for the next
half hour.
"Okay, so why did you switch hands during our sparring Tenchi?"
"Well, my shoulder is a little sore today. Sorry I'm not exactly 100 for you."
Art felt
a little deflated at this news, realizing he had been beaten even
when his
opponent was handicapped. "Well, are there any kata
or techniques you could show
me?"
Tenchi ran through
one of the classic Jurai sword routines 'Spring Waterfall', which
was
a series of different powerful downward strikes followed by upward
blocks. It
was nothing fancy, but it served to work on producing
power in strikes using technique
instead of strength. It took Art
about an hour to learn the movements.
"Well, I think that's enough for one night. Thank you very much, Tenchi."
Art
felt his ego a little deflated, but his resolve to meet the master
who had trained
Tenchi was strengthened. He ran into Rei and Emi
on his way out as they sought to tend
to Tenchi. He thought of a
way to boost his pride. "C'mon girls, keep me company for
a
while." He placed an arm around each girl, and the giggled as he
led them off towards
his chambers.
Tenchi took a shower and
soaked in the bath, keeping his shoulder under the water. It
was
coming up on 9:30, so he got out of the tub, dried off and dressed.
He made his
way outside, towards the strip of high ground between
the house and the runway.
Arts estate had a very advanced
security system, and he had a platoon of guards who ran
it for
him. These weren't your typical guards either. They were all
ex-military. Army
Rangers, Navy Seals, and Recon Marines. It was a
very boring assignment, but the job
perks more than made up for
it. Infrared sensors picked up Tenchi's movement, as he
walked out
towards the runway. The shift commander saw the lights on his board,
and
pulled up the cameras in that area on one of his monitors.
"That's him?" he asked
the sergeant of the guard. "Yep,
thats Larry's guest. Probably just out for a walk."
The
commander nodded. "Okay, I'm going to the main guard shack to
check on the sentry
there, let me know if he does anything out of
the ordinary."
"You got it."
Ryoko was
up in a geosynchronus orbit above the equator, and her visual screen
was zoomed
into and locked on the location Tenchi had descibed. It
was too easy. She had left the
house before anyone got up, and
flew to this spot, watching the terminator-the line of
darkness
separating night from day, slowly cross the estate. It wouldn't be
long now.
Her heart began beating rapidly in anticipation. It was
almost time. She began her
descent, watching for the light from
his sword.
Tenchi looked at his watch, 9:55. (Almost time.)
The commander called the sergeant of the guard from the sentry post, "Anything happening?"
"Nope, he's up on the hill, hasn't moved for a while."
"Hmm...stargazing? Alright, I'll be back soon. Want coffee?"
"Sure."
Tenchi looked at his watch for the tenth time, 9:57. (Okay, here goes.)
The sergeart of the guard looked up at his monitors
suddenly. The display that had held
the image of Mr. Hamiltons
guest was now washed out in solid light, "What the
hell...?"
Ryoko saw the light when she was at
about eight thousand feet up. (Go home and keep
Sasami company
Ryo-ohki, I'll call you when I need a ride), and she phased
outside
into the night.
"Miyaaaaaaaa!!!", cried Ryo-ohki in acknowledgement as she sped away.
Ryoko just relaxed in midair, free falling towards her love.
"Uh, commander, somethings up with my camera here, I can't see the subject anymore."
Thge commander was in a jeep on the way back to
the main guardhouse, "Okay, I'll
ride by there as soon as I
can to get a direct visual."
Ryoko landed about fifty
feet away from Tenchi, and simply looked at him for a
while.
Seeing him standing there, lit up by the blue light, gave her
that
funny new warm feeling again in the pit of her stomach. She
saw the serious
look on his face of what...? Anticipation? She
closed her eyes, and listened.
She focused her hearing and could
make out the beating of his heart. It was
beating about as quickly
as hers. She savored the moment, then opened her eyes
and began
walking towards him.
"Damn night vision cameras!
What's he doing? Pointing a spotlight at it?" The
sergeant
asked himself. Then he called the commander, "How long to eyes
on
target?"
The commander radioed back, "Two minutes. Has he moved from that spot?"
"Nope. Infrared shows no movement."
"Okay, try to bring up a visual on another camera."
"Tenchi?"
He heard her call his name, and he instantly extinguished his sword.
"Whoa, hey commander, got a visual, and our little guest isn't alone anymore!"
"What?"
"He's got a woman with him now, and DAMN what a hottie!"
"Alright,
I suppose this warrants a call to Mr. Hamilton. Keep an eye on
them
for now. I'll be there in four minutes."
Tenchi
could barely make out her outline in the dark, but there was no
mistaking
it. His eyes slowly adjusted, but Ryoko's amazing vision
had already adapted.
She could see him squinting out into the
night towards her. "Ryoko?"
She was there before him,
just out of arms reach. For once in her life, Ryoko
was a little
nervous. This was it, what she had been waiting for, so why did
she
hesitate? Tenchi felt the same way, that mixed feeling of nervousness
and
excitement. They stood there in the dark facing each other,
for an eternally
long moment. Then they moved together as one,
closing the distance and wrapping
their arms around each other,
not saying a word. They stood there, simply hugging
each other,
rocking back and forth, caressing each others backs, for quite
some
time.
Art was rather annoyed to hear the phone
ring at that particular moment. He rolled
over and reached across
Rei as Emi sat up. "What is it?"
"Um, sorry to disturb you sir, but we have an unannounced visitor on the estate."
"Where?"
"Between the airfield and the house, I can send you a camera feed sir."
"Do it."
Art punched a button and a flat screen video monitor
slid smoothly from the ceiling.
It clicked on to show Tenchi and
Ryoko loosening their embrace enough to begin a
hesitant kiss. Rei
and Emi sat up suddenly, feeling slightly jealous. Art
then
remembered Tenchi's request, and his remark about his girl
having 'her own ride.'
"Stand down, commander. She's alright.
Just continue with normal monitoring ops."
"Very well sir. Uh, sir?"
"Yes?"
"I just
thought I should mention this, but she just appeared with him out of
nowhere.
We picked up no perimeter breaches of any kind, it's like
she dropped out of the sky."
"Strange. Have a full report for me by morning."
"Yes sir, goodnight."
Art pondered this new information for a
moment as he looked at the couple on the screen
as their kisses
grew more passionate. (Just who is Tenchi's mystery girl?) He
clicked
the screen off, and returned his attention to the women at
hand.
Ryoko was experiencing all kinds of new feelings,
then Tenchi broke off the kiss, and
she moaned in disappointment.
"Let's get inside, or we'll be out here all night."
"I don't care Tenchi, as long as you're here..."
"C'mon. I can't even see you out here."
He took her by the hand,
and led her to the house. Once inside in the light, he turned
her
to face him, and took both of her hands in his. He looked deeply into
her eyes, the
look on his face mirrored the seriousness of his
next statement, "I love you." Ryoko
could have melted
right then and there. She leaned into him, holding on for
support.
She kissed him on the neck, and started working her way
up his neck to his cheek, then
his lips. Before the kiss could
deepen too much, Tenchi broke it off again to another
moan of
protest. "Out of the hallway."
They were in the
elevator then. Ryoko pounced, slamming Tenchi up against the wall.
She
had both arms around his neck while holding his head in her
hands, pulling him into a deep
kiss. She pressed her lower body
against his, instinctively, urgently. The warm feeling
in the pit
of her belly was becoming a raging fire. The elevator door opened and
he broke
off again, to the loudest protest yet. Sweeping her off
her feet, and ignoring the pain
in his shoulder, he carried her
down the hallway. She had her arms around his neck showering
kisses
on him all the way to his room. He set her down by the door, and
pushed her away
long enough to open it and shuffle
inside...
Please
visit if you are over 21 to read the
deleted
scene here known as "Journey's
Wayside"
Sasami
searched the house for Ryoko after breakfast, worried about her
friend. Nobody
mentioned her absence at the meal, for all their
own reasons. Washuu and Mihoshi were
covering for Ryoko, and Yosho
was protecting Aeka's feelings. Aeka assumed that Ryoko
was
slipping back into character finally. Sasami was the only one who
thought something
was wrong. She decided to visit Washuu in her
lab. "Hello...Washuu!"
Washuu popped up in front of her, "What can I do for you Sasami?"
"Well, I was worried about Ryoko..."
"Don't worry, my little girl is just fine. She wanted to go away for a couple days."
Sasami was saddened at this, especially since
Ryoko didn't say goodbye. Washuu saw
the little princess become
visibly upset. Not knowing what else to do, she sent a
mental call
out to Ryoko, and her face flushed at the feedback coming to her
through
the link. Quickly cutting it off, she shook her head and
sighed. Giving Sasami a
hug, she said, "I have an idea, lets
go into town today for lunch. We can bring back
take-out for
everyone else. My treat." Sasami brightened at this.
"So how are we going to get there?"
"I think I can come
up with something," Washuu said with the mad scientist gleam
in
her eye.
Sasami left the lab as Washuu began working
furiously on something. She went to find
soemone to go with her to
feed the prisoner. Aeka volunteered and they walked out to
Mihoshi's
ship.
Morai decided that the only thing he had to work with
was the chopsticks. Finding
the underside of his cot slightly
abrasive, he slowly and painstakingly worked on
putting points on
them. It would take some time, but what else did he have to do?
He
put them away when he heard someone coming. It was the little girl
with the
snobby one this time. He sat there quietly, not saying a
word as the princess
deactivated the door and replaced the old
tray with the new one. He managed to wink
and smile at Sasami
without Aeka noticing. She smiled back and waved. Aeka did
notice
this. On the way back to the house, she said, "Sasami, I don't
want you to
be so friendly with that one. He is a ruthless and
evil space pirate, and very
dangerous."
"Well, you used to say that about Ryoko, you know."
Aeka sighed,
"That is a totally separate issue. Ryoko was controlled, and she
is
different now."
Sasami remained silent, thinking
that he was probably forced to be that way through
circumstance,
instead of mind control like Ryoko. She resolved to find out one
way
or another.
Both were interupted from their thoughts by
the unfamiliar vehicle sitting in the
driveway. Although the two
girls couldn't readily identify it, any American car
enthusiast
would have immediately recognized it as a 1969 Camaro SS. Behind
the
wheel was an adult Washuu. Upon seeing Sasami, she honked the
horn. "C'mon lets
go!" Sasami ran over quickly, hopping
into the car, leaving Aeka behind.
Aeka found herself alone at
the house, which was a distinctly unique situation.
Mihoshi was
nowhere to be found, and Yosho was most likely at the shrine.
She
decided to check on Ryu-oh, then do some gardening.
Mihoshi
had made up her mind to see Yosho about her problems. Wandering up to
the
shrine after breakfast, she found the old priest sweeping the
pathways. "Good
morning Mihoshi."
"Good Morning, grandfather. Um...I meant to ask you if...um..."
Yosho
smiled at her, "If I could help you? Yes, I would be happy to.
Come inside."
Her showed her into the building. Indicating a
seat on the floor, "Here, sit and
make yourself comfortable."
Yosho had already given a lot of thought to possible
courses of
action. Opening a small drawer in his cabinet, he brought out a
small
box. He opened it to reveal several small needles. "Mihoshi,
have y
Chapter 12
Noboyuki, the first one up as always, yawned and
stretched before rolling out of bed.
There was a rare lull of
activity at work, so he was able to sleep a little later on
this
day. There were two things he was looking forward to this morning.
Breakfast
by Sasami and finding out whos car that was sitting in
the driveway. He had as a boy
been in love with classic American
cars, and the 1969 Camaro SS convertible had been
one of his
favorites. When he wasn't drawing, he had been building model cars.
As
he walked downstairs, he heard Sasami busy in the kitchen
already. He just wanted to
let her know he would be joining them.
"Good Morning Sasami."
The little princess turned
around with a bright smile as always, "Good Morning Father,
hey
- will you be staying for breakfast?"
Noboyuki smiled and nodded.
"Too bad you have to leave so early all the time
and work so late. I'm glad you could
stay today."
"Thank you Sasami."
Noboyuki left the kitchen with a smile.
(Such pleasant girls. It is nice to have
women in this house,
after been empty for so long) Then a brief sadness descended
on
his thoughts, remembering his wife. (May Tenchi never know such pain
as I.)
He often reflected on the amazing dynamic of the household.
How he would have given
up vital parts of his anatomy at Tenchi's
age to have such women competing over him.
(Tenchi can be so thick
headed sometimes) he smiled while thinking. He himself
would have
chosen Aeka a long time ago. Of course, his opinion was biased by
the
fact that she reminded him a little of his wife when she was
younger. Ryoko was
another story - every schoolboys dream girl.
Beautiful and wild. (Well, maybe it
isn't such an easy decision
after all.) Washuu of course had all the men in the
house spooked
by her little girl appearance. There was the incident where she
had
changed into an adult that Tenchi told him about,
unfortunately he didn't witness it.
And then there was beautiful
Mihoshi, but besides that and her bubbly personality,
she could
drive you crazy with her clumsiness. He thought of the little Haiku
he
had made up one day, to sum it all up:
Beautiful
women
They are everywhere I turn
but none of them mine
His
Father-in-law decided he would join them for breakfast as well. They
sat down and
had a nice chat before the meal. At breakfast, he
asked about the car.
"Oh, that little thing? It's my latest invention!" Washuu declared.
Noboyuki was a little
disappointed, he wished it was an original instead of a
replica.
"Well, what made you decide to model it after that
particular car?"
"I didn't, I just picked that one
at random. Let me show you a few tricks it does
after
breakfast."
Yosho had a concern he wanted to address.
"Mihoshi, Washuu. I was wondering about
our guest. I
understand you have been feeding him well and regularly. However,
what
of his other needs? Have you had him outside at all? Perhaps
allowed him to bathe
or get a change of clothes?"
Mihoshi
hung her head in shame. She realized she had been avoiding her
prisoner, in
fact avoiding her responsibility. With a new resolve,
he looked up and said, "You
need not worry Grandfather! I
will see that all is taken care of!"
"No Mihoshi,
you are on vacation. Allow some of the others to bear the burden.
I
insist." He looked around the table meaningfully at the
others.
"Don't worry Mihoshi, leave it to us." Piped in Washuu.
"Yes Mihoshi dear, we will take care of it for you," Aeka added.
Noboyuki marveled at his new dream car,
thinking (I have to have one of these!)
Washuu saw Noboyuki's
youth like enthusiasm over the different shapes as she
transformed
the car into some of his favorite models, and decided she would
make
one for him as well. (It's the least I can do to repay the
kindness he has shown
us all.)
Aeka and Sasami took
breakfast out to Morai. Aeka was trying to decide how to go
about
obeying her brothers wishes. Once in Yukinojo by the holding cell,
she took
a good look at the pirate for the first time. He was a
little tall, about 6' 2".
His black shoulder length hair was
tied back in a simple pony tail. Where he had
once worn a thin
moustache, he now had several days growth of beard. His clothes
were
all wrinkled and disheveled. His skin was slightly swarthy, and his
eyes-
they were black as his hair. They also had an intelligent
look, in a malignant
sort of way.
Morai considered the
purple haired woman who was regarding him curiously through
the
force field door. She hadn't spoken to him at all yet, and he
wondered why
she was looking at him like that. (She's checking me
out, and not in the way I'd
like. Why?) Finally she spoke, in a
manner full of disdain, "What are you called?"
With a dramatic bow, "Morai, milady. Formerly of planet Koldari, at your service."
"Well Morai, today we shall see if
you can behave yourself. Since your appearence
is offensive, today
we will attempt to alleviate that fact somewhat."
"Milady is too kind."
Aeka simply smirked.
"Alright,
after you eat we shall return to take you somewhere to get cleaned
up, but
I must warn you - do not attempt anything untoward. It
would cost you dearly."
Something in her eyes made him believe what she said.
"As you wish Milady. And how shall I address you?"
"Call me Princess."
Aeka
shut down the forcefield and took away the old meal tray before
replacing it with
the full one. Morai consider this new
development (Demon, Princess, and Sasami. Why
are they all so
bold? They are going to clean me up?) He thought about his
little
sharpened sticks hidden in his bunk, considering bringing
them along, but then thought
better of it. He needed to know more
before acting.
Sasami returned to the kitchen to clean up
while Aeka went to find her brother. Little
Washuu was just
finished eating when the young princess started picking up around
the
table. Washuu still felt obligated to cover for her daughters
absence, so she decided
to help. Once everything was in the
kitchen, they started on dishes. Sasami washed
while Washuu dried,
and slowly learned where the different items belonged. Soon she
found
that some of the places were difficult to reach, so she changed into
her taller
adult form. Sasami jumped, startled when she turned
around a moment later. "Oh, don't
scare me like that!"
"Oh, I'm sorry Sasami! Do you prefer me smaller?"
She thought
for a moment before responding, a strange look on her face. "I
don't really
have a preference, but maybe you should try being
this way more often. I think that most
of the others would prefer
you that way."
Washuu considered this for a moment,
remembering her resolution to get out more. "I just
may do
that after all. Thanks Sasami."
She smiled up at Washuu before continuing on the dishes.
Aeka finally found Yosho
wandering the lake shore. "Brother, wait!" She shouted.
He
paused and allowed her to catch up, then resumed walking.
"Yosho, I need to ask you
a favor."
"Hmm?"
"Well,
it's about Mihoshi's prisoner. He is desperately in need of a bath
and change of
clothes. I was wondering if you had something you
could lend us."
"I have an old outfit you may use."
"Also, in the baths, could you, um..."
"Yes, I shall guard him in the baths as
well. It was my request to lighten Mihoshi's
burden in the first
place."
"Thank you brother."
Aeka turned to go, but Yosho stopped her. "Aeka?"
"Yes?"
"Walk with me a while?"
They traveled in silence half way
around the lake, before Yosho began. "So, how are you
adjusting
to all the changes around here?"
"Well, it certainly is more peaceful."
"What of the changes in the others?"
"Well, Mihoshi I am worried about. She acts
differently sometimes because of the lab
incident I'm sure."
"She
has an inner demon to face, to be certain." (Perhaps two.) He
thought. "And what
of Ryoko?"
Aeka had to think
for a while before answering. "Well, at times her new behavior
can be
...unsettling."
"How do you mean?"
"Well...my view of her is changing. It
has been difficult though, considering our
...history
together."
"So, are you saying that she is becoming more disturbing to you?"
"No. She is actually behaving better than ever."
"So what is it about her changes that unsettles you?"
Aeka was silent for a
minute. Yosho was patient as always. Finally she took a deep
breath
and let out a sigh. "It's Tenchi."
"I see. So you believe that she is more of a threat."
"I suppose you could put it that way, brother."
Another period of silence.
"Do not concern yourself about it.
Perhaps you should try to enjoy the company of the
ones you are
visiting this weekend more?"
"They could never be more than just friends. They aren't of noble blood."
"You know how I feel about that, sister."
Aeka paused in her walking, "Perhaps I don't."
Yosho stopped, turned, and looked at her. "What is nobility, after all?"
"Well, the royal family and other aristocracy of course."
"And what makes one family noble and another not?"
"..."
"What of my mother?"
"Well, she is the Empress of course."
"And what of before Father married her?"
"..."
"Perhaps you will
in time understand my feelings on this matter. I shall meet you
at
the baths when you fetch our guest." With that, he walked
off into the woods, leaving
Aeka alone with her thoughts.
Washuu
decided to be a grown-up for the rest of the day, and it was in this
form that
she went t track Mihoshi down. It wasn't too difficult,
as she made sunning herself
by the lake a regular part of her day.
"There you are Mihoshi!"
The blonde turned to her
side to see Washuu looking down at her benevolently.
"Hello
little...well, do I call you that when you look
like this?"
"Washuu alone will do just fine. Now, I
was wondering if you would come down to see
me in the lab when you
are finished here?"
Mihoshi seemed a little apprehensive at the idea, "How come?"
"Well, I had some
ideas about how to deal with your little problem. I need a
baseline
from which to work. The best thing would be a complete
set of your memories..."
Mihoshi cut her off suddenly, "No, I'm sorry Washuu, I just can't let you."
"Oh sure, it's no big deal, it'll only take a couple seconds."
Washuu
then saw tears coming out from behind Mihoshi's sunglasses. She sat
up from her
towel and folded her arms across her chest with her
head bowed. She turned her head
to face away from Washuu and in a
barely audible voice, "I don't want you to."
Washuu
sat down beside her, not knowing what to do. "It's okay Mihoshi,
we don't have
to, it was just a thought okay?" She placed an
arm around her shoulders and could feel
the blone shivering
despite the warmth of the day. "Forget about it, we'll find
another
way alright?" Mihoshi seemed to slowly relax. "Hey,
what about Friday night? And I'll
bet you can't wait for out
little outing, hmm?"
Then Mihoshi seemed to forget
completely about her distress, "Oh, I hope they are as cute
as
Aeka said!"
"I'm sure they are, and we're going to Disney too!"
"Oh, I love the cartoon movies they make, I can't wait!"
Washuu gave Mihoshi a little hug and
said, "Me neither. You relax and I'll see you at
lunch
right?"
Mihoshi just nodded her head
enthusiastically before returning to her sunbathing. Washuu
started
back to the lab, thinking of new ways to help her troubled
friend.
Aeka entered Yukinojo alone. She had given her
Guardians strict instructions to remain out
of sight, but to
monitor the prisoner constantly. Azaka stationed himself in a corner
of
the baths while Kamidake sat halfway between the baths and the
ship. Morai sat in thought,
wondering what bits of info his little
outing would reveal. He had a mental checklist for
filling in the
holes in his knowledge. Princess showed up like she promised, and
shut down
the force field door. Setting aside, she motioned for
him walk ahead of her.
"Turn left there...now to the
right..." Morai followed her directions, committing
the
path outside to memory. Soon he was outside, finally. It was a
beautiful day. The
local star was of the yellow type, and the sky
was blue with a few fair weather cumulus
clouds here and there.
The ship sat alongside a primitive wooden dock, which led up to
a
large house of unfamiliar architecture. They were in somewhat
mountainous territory, in
what seemed to be a relatively
unpopulated area. As he walked towards a domed structure
floating
in midair with no apparent support, he noticed something he had only
seen in a
few pictures. Out on the lake sat what appeared to be a
Juraian tree ship unit, with a
small tree in the center. He
disciplined himself to continue noting the layout of the
area and
it's surroundings before his mind could begin wildy contemplating the
meaning
of all this. (I'll have plenty of time to think on these
tings later.) As they approached
the entrance to the baths, he saw
an old man waiting for them. Under one arm he held a
bundle of
clothes, and in his other hand he held what appeared to be a wooden
sword. He
would have laughed before he realized he would have
gladly traded his little sharp sticks
for the bokken. The old man
took over from there, motioning him inside.
"So, I finally get to meet our guest. I am Katsuhito, please come with me."
The baths were luxurious. Morai was used to the
cramped shower facilities on his old ship.
Not having a chance to
clean up for a few days, he was more than ready to get washed
up.
Stripping down, he started towards the water, "Wait."
He
turned to see the old man pointing towards a set of low waterfalls.
"Wash up there
first, then you may soak in the
water."
Shrugging his shoulders, he complied. Soon he was
resting in the hot water. The old
man sat by quietly, watching.
Instead of getting information from the old man, he got
questions.
"So, I trust you have been eating well?"
"Yes, very well." Morai made it a point to be polite, as his status was still unknown.
"I must apologize for the delay in
attending to your other needs, but other things have
taken
precedence."
This statement caused Morai some confusion, (Apologizing to me?)
"We are all still undecided on how
to deal with your situation, but I can assure you that
we will
find a way. May I ask you, in light of your recent actions, what
would you consider
to be a suitable punishment?"
"You are asking me?"
"Yes. Your final disposition will be
ultimately decided by Detective First Class Mihoshi of
the Galaxy
Police, but any suggestions you may have will be given due
consideration."
"I'm not sure I understand."
"You
need not answer now, but be sure to think on it thoroughly. You will
have a great deal
of time to do so. Detective Mihoshi is in charge
of this protected area, and with her
position comes wide
authority. Basically, you are at her...disposal."
Morai didn't like the sound of that last statement one bit, "Mihoshi...the blonde one?"
Katsuhito nodded, and Morai sank down into the water, muttering negative things.
The mailman parked
his bicycle and cautiously approached the gate. Today things
were
different. The strange wooden posts weren't there, and he had
an express mail envelope
to deliver. He opened the gates and
approached the house in fear. In the past, he had
seen and heard
strange things. Besides the fact that this house had appeared on
the
route suddenly one day, there was also the local legend of the
demon imprisoned up at
the shrine. Odd sounds could be heard along
with the occasional boom of an explosion.
On at least one occasion
he found the place completely destroyed, only to see it
fully
restored the next day. He was even more afraid to tell
anyone of what he'd seen, for
fear of being locked away as a
madman. The door loomed fearfully before him, and he
reluctantly
rang the bell. The woman that answered the door was an unusual one,
but
despite her foreign looks and unusual hair color, she took his
breath away. After a
moment Aeka said, "Well, are you going
to speak or gawk all day."
"Uh, special delivery ma'am, sign here please?"
Taking the offered pen, Aeka signed her name in Juraian script (similar to Hirigana).
Bowing,
the mailman quickly returned to his bicycle, his apprehension
returning
despite the beauty at the door. Aeka looked the large
envelope over. It was addressed
to her brother, with the return
address of a nearby shrine listed. Curious, she began
to walk to
the baths.
Washuu decided to fill Ryoko's new role in the
kitchen assisting Sasami with lunch. She
remained in her adult
form, as she was a 'bigger help' that way. "Say Washuu, would
you
go with me to bring lunch to Morai today?"
"The prisoner?" Washuu thought it would be an interesting diversion, "Of course."
Aeka met her brother as the two left the baths. "Yosho, this came for you today."
Morai's
ears perked up at the name she used. Thanking his sister, he took the
envelope
and tore it open, removing the four letters inside. "I
believe this is for you Aeka.
Here." He handed one to her. "I
shall escort our guest here to the ship. Please give
these to the
others." He handed her the rest, and continued on towards
Yukinojo.
Aeka looked at the envelope and instantly recognized whose writing it was (TENCHI!)
She opened the letter carefully, almost reverently, and began reading,
Dear Aeka,
Well, it's been a pretty long week for me. The master I
am training with, Ernesto,
is well versed in many of Earths
advanced fighting techniques. He has been keeping
me very busy. I
haven't done much other than train, eat, and rest. Some
summer
vacation, huh? But honestly, it has been alot of fun. I
hope everyone is getting
along back home. Tomorrow I'm going to
leave here to meet the next master. All
this secrecy in my travel
arrangements turned out to be a way to keep anyone from
finding
out where grandpa lives. It seems he is a legend in Earths sword
fighting
community, and he would be swamped with aspiring students
if anyone knew where he
was! I'll write back next week, good bye
until then!
Tenchi
She didn't expect a mushy love
letter, but had hoped for...something more.
Sighing, she
returned to the house. She found Sasami in the kitchen, "I have
a
letter for you Sasami, from Tenchi!"
"O Boy!" The little princess explained while rapidly wiping her hands clean.
Dear Sasami,
Thank you for the tasty snacks.
This is my first week away, and I've been
in a suburb of San
Franciso. I've been busy training, so I haven't been around
to see
much other than the dojo and some friends houses. Back home just
about
everyone is Japanese, but here, there are more nationalities
than I can count.
The training has been tough so far, but I'm
learning new techniques. I've made
some new friends (and maybe
even a new enemy!) My host, Ernesto, is a very nice
man with a
wonderful family. I went to a party last night and learned how
to
dance. I hope all is well back home. Take care of everyone for
me!
Tenchi
"I'm going to make some more stuff for
him after lunch!" Smiling, she continued
on with lunch
preparation.
Washuu was looking at Aeka expectantly, "Well?"
"I'm sorry Miss Washuu, you didn't receive one."
"Oh," Washuu said, looking a
little crestfallen. (I guess it hasn't fully hit
me yet that he
isn't my little guinea pig anymore, as if he ever was. But no
letter
for me?) She returned quietly to the task assigned her as Aeka went
to
find Mihoshi.
Mihoshi was in her customary spot by the
lake still. Where she was from the sun
was much stronger, and it
took her much longer to tan here. "I have a letter
for you
Mihoshi dear." Mihoshi saw up excited, "For me? But who
would write
me here?"
Aeka chuckled, happy to see
Mihoshi acting like her old self, "From Lord Tenchi
of
course!"
"Oooooo!" Squealed Mihoshi as she
snatched the letter from Aeka's hand. tearing
it open
quickly.
Dear Mihoshi,
I'm having fun out here,
learning alot. I hope you are feeling better after what
happened
in Washuu's lab. I was really worried about you. I was glad to see
you
and Ryoko getting along so well. Take care of each other for
me while I am gone,
okay? You would have been proud of me
yesterday! I protected someone from a mean
guy who wanted to boss
her around. I think he is in trouble with the police now.
Stay
safe when you are out on patrol. See you later!
Tenchi
Mihoshi finished with a big grin on her face, "Wanna read it Aeka?"
"well, if you don't mind..." Mihoshi
thrust it at her excitedly, and after a
moment of thought, Aeka
handed hers over for the blonde to read.
On the way back to
the house, Aeka considered the final envelope. (When is she
getting
back? I hope she hasn't worn out our welcome with Joey.) Once
inside,
she placed it on Tenchi's bed, knowing that the pirate had
taken it over in his
absence. She wasn't happy about it, but
didn't think it was worth fighting over.
(As long as she doesn't
expect to continue sleeping here when my Tenchi returns.)
The
Mihoshi and Sasami discussed Tenchi's adventures excitedly over
lunch, but
Aeka and Washuu remained mostly quiet. Washuu knew her
daughter had won Tenchi's
heart, but not getting a letter from him
still hurt her feelings. (At least
Ryoko is finally happy.)
Opening her link for a moment, she felt pleasant dreams
floating
back. Comforted by this somewhat, she turned her thoughts to
other
things. Aeka was still slightly disappointed by the letter.
(I suppose I should
not expect him to act any differently while he
is away. Will he be non-committal
to the end?) Then Sasami said
something that pulled her from her thoughts.
"What was that you said?"
Sasami turned to her sister, "Oh,
Tenchi said he learned how to dance! That's good
because I could
tell during the going away party that he needed some pointers."
Aeka
felt a twinge of jealously at the thought of Tenchi dancing with some
stranger.
Then she remembered her night out with Ryoko, and felt a
pang of guilt. (Perhaps I
should listen to Yosho's advice after
all.) Slightly confused at her mixed feelings,
she excused herself
from the table, deciding to take a walk alone to think.
Washuu's
mood lightened considerably as she contemplated the fun ahead. She
and
Sasami were off together to feed Morai. Washuu was back into
her small size again,
wanting to see if the prisoner acted
differently around little girls.
Morai was lost in thought,
going over the new information and the question the old
man had
left him with. (Yosho, Juraian tree ship...I've heard that name
before.
If this is that Juraian protectorate we hit the caravan
near...) He was
interrupted from his thoughts by the new
arrival. (Two young girls now. How can these
people be so bold?
Are they baiting me?) Both girls were smiling, and Morai turned
on
the charm. "Hello Sasami. And hello...what's your
name?"
"Little Washuu." She said in her best little girl voice.
"Pleased to meet you."
Sasami
couldn't hold back her giggles anymore, amused at her friends
deception. Washuu
Washuu began giggling too. (Typical little
girls.)
Sasami lowered the force field while Washuu boldy
strode into the cell with the tray,
"Here you are sir!"
she said as she handed it to him, giggling.
"So you're a for real space pirate, huh?"
"Yes, I suppose so."
"How long you been one?"
He considered for a moment before answering, "About ten years."
"You ever been caught before?"
"No, not until now."
"You must be really tricky then."
Both girls began giggling again.
(Why don't
I just bolt out of here, right now? What could these two possibly do
to stop
me?) While weighing the possibility in his head, Washuu
carefully observed his body
language. The way his eyes were
darting towards the doorway and the tension building in
his frame
indicated his anxiousness. Acting quickly, she backed away, pulling
Sasami
out with her before closing the force field.
Suddenly
Morai was almost relieved. He had come so close to running out
without proper
planning first. (I have to get a grip here. No
running off half-cocked! But that
redhead...it was almost as if
she knew...)
"Bye-Bye!" The two girls said in unison, while waving.
Once outside the ship, "Sasami, don't ever go there alone. He's a sneaky one."
"But he doesn't seem so bad. Ryoko can be sneaky too."
"But she's a different story altogether!"
"That's what Aeka said." Sasami said quietly.
Assuming this to be an
agreement, Washuu dropped the subject. Growing back to full
size
she said, "Hey, let's all go out to dinner tonight!"
Sasami
got all excited over this, remembering their last ride into town,
"Okay! We
can bring Morai a doggie bag!"
Laughing together, they entered the house.
Art
was an early riser, and made it a habit to go out and run for half an
hour every
morning. Rain, shine or snow, he pushed himself hard,
until it hurt. A trick he
learned was that when you are in that
zone, you concentrate on other things to keep
your mind off the
discomfort. Right now he considered the things he wanted to
have
accomplished before the day was done in regards to his
guests. First, he wanted to
read the incident report from the
night of Ryoko's arrival. He'd been too busy to
look at it the day
before. He wasn't entirely convinced of the story Tenchi handed
him
about her being a Ninja. He got the feeling they were pulling one
over on him.
She was such an unusual looking girl, he figured she
would stand out in Japan like
a swan in a duck pond. Tenchi would
have been difficult to track down, but her? A
piece of cake! He
needed more information though, and a seemingly innocent
conversation
can reveal much. His thoughts drifted to the
Tournament. He had been number 10 until
he loaned Ernesto the
money to start his own business, and the distration from
constant
sword training had given Art the edge. Next in line will
be Nate, the Green Beret from
Fort Bragg. The last tournament bout
they had together had been close, maddeningly so
for Art. He spent
a month in Japan after that with all the sword masters he could
buy,
reviewing time and again the video's taken by Arts assistant.
Not just the video of their
fight, but Nate's fight with Ernesto,
and Carl - the number 7 master. The system masters
in Japan
declined to participate in the tournaments, to the chagrin of some
and the thanks
of others. They were more than willing to train the
contestants however. Art lost
millions of dollars worth of
opportunities because of that little trip. (But Tenchi
could show
me so much more than they ever could. He has a way of making me see
things
more clearly with his friendly nature than those stern old
men.) But he was torn
between his new found interest in the
mysterious Ryoko, and his obsession for advancing
in the ranks of
top swordsmen. (There's just something about her...I can't quite
put my
finger on it.) He finished his run near the main guard
shack where he did some cool
down exercises and stretches before
going to read that report.
The guard commander was waiting for
him with a fresh cup of coffee and the paper he wanted
to
see:
INCIDENT REPORT
21 JUNE
WEATHER SKY
CLEAR, VISIBILTY UNLIMITED
NIGHTTIME
MOONLIGHT 12
ILLUMINATION
2140
Subject exits house and proceeds to low
ridgeline halfway
to airfield. Movement tracked by infrared
sensors.
2145
Subject remains in place on ridgeline, no
activity.
2157
Camera interference begins. Visual contact
with subject lost.
2200
Visual reacquired. Appearance of
second subject.
2203
Both subjects return to house.
METHOD OF INFILTRATION UNDETERMINED AT THIS TIME
POSSIBILITIES:
AERIAL
INSERTION OR INFRARED AVOIDANCE GEAR USED
FIRST SUBJECT DEPLOYED
SOME SORT OF JAMMING EQUIPMENT
Respectfully
Submitted,
Christopher Conklin
Shift Commander
"You think she jumped in Chris?"
"It seems like the only
plausible theory. There were so signs of any equipment
anywhere,
however. We went over the whole area with a fine tooth
comb looking for a 'chute or a
IR
suit...nothing."
"Hmm...looks like I might have to take Sherlock Holmes advice."
Perplexed, the ex-commando asked, "And what would that be, sir?"
Art
sighed and quoted with a furrowed brow,"When you have eliminated
the impossible,
whatever remains, however improbable, must be the
truth?"
"I'll keep that in mind sir."
"The end of you shift coming up?"
"Yes sir."
"DO you still maintain your contacts from your past...employment?"
"I have a chat with some old friends from time to time."
"I might ask you to call on them later, thanks for the report."
"No problem sir."
On his helicopter ride to the city, he
asked his pilot about his old friend at the FAA, and
called in a
favor.
The morning light streamed in through the window,
hitting Ryoko right in the face. She
stirred, and slowly opened
her eyes to regard the orange ball climbing over the horizon.
So
much had happened in so little time. So much change. She looked at
Tenchi. She
loved watching him sleep. He had said the night before
that he needed more sleep, because
his host had gone through so
much trouble and expense to bring him here to train. It
wouldn't
be right if he wasn't in top form to make it worthwhile. So she had
taken it
easy with him, remembering Yosho's words as well, "You
two have alot to catch up on, just
try not to all at once."
Today they would catch up on other things. A half hour or so
later,
Tenchi opened his eyes to be greeted by the sight that used to
frighten him, instead
he smiled, eliciting a bigger beautiful
smile from the ex-pirate. Then she frowned, as
if considering
something, "Tenchi, what is this terrible taste in my mouth
from?"
"What do you mean?"
"Well, I
guess I didn't tell you yet. For as long as I could remember, I had
no sense of
taste."
Tenchi looked at her, suprise and sympathy mixed on his face, "Ryoko..."
"It's okay now, Washuu fixed it. But she said that everything she gave back had drawbacks."
"Everything?"
"Well, taste wasn't all that was broke..."
She went over all
the things she had restored, one in particular brought a blush to
both of
them, despite their new found intimacy. "But I
haven't found out what the drawback is to
that one yet." She
giggled behind her hand.
"Ahem...well that taste in your mouth...it's called morning breath."
"Oh, how do you get rid of it?"
"Brush your teeth or eat
something. I guess you don't have to worry about tooth decay,
with
your regenerative abilities. And...I never noticed anything wrong
with the way
your mouth...tastes."
Ryoko seized his
head in both her hands and engaged him in a loving lip lock.
"Hmmm..
I see what you mean, you could use a good brushing
Tenchi."
"Ryoko!"
She phased out of bed and re-appeared by the sink, laughing.
"Oh, no, you
aren't getting away so easy!" Tenchi launched a pillow at her
while
simultaneously leaping out of bed to give chase. Ryoko
avoided him easily, laughing
all the way. What struck her as the
most funny was the fact Tenchi was chasing her
for a change.
(Well, I'll just have to let him catch me...but where?) She let
him
corner her out on the balcony, where she turned to face him, with her
back up
against the railing. Tenchi ran up and grabbed her, "You
got me, now what are you
going to do with me?" She whispered
seductively. Scooping her up, he carried her
into the bath area
and threw her in. Rising out of the water and shaking her hair
free
of water, she pouted. "But I had a better idea."
"No,
not until after I train with Art tonight." Tenchi laughed. He
turned towards
the sink where he kept the toothbrush,
self-conscious despite the fact Ryoko was
only joking about the
taste of his mouth. Curious, she phased over next to him.
Grabbing
the brush before he could, she asked, "Can I do it for
you?"
"What?"
"Can I brush your teeth for you?"
Tenchi raised his eyebrows, considering
the request. He hated telling her no again.
"Oh, alright.
Here..." He took the brush and rinsed it under the water and
applied
toothpaste. "Okay, now I won't be able to tell you
what to do after you start, just
make sure you get all the teeth,
and use a circular motion. And don't press too hard
or you'll hurt
my gums."
Ryoko faced him and Tenchi opened his mouth
wide as she carefully cleaned his teeth.
She used a washcloth to
wipe any of the stuff that started running out over his lips.
He
was pleasantly suprised at how careful and thorough she was, and the
look of
concentration on her face struck a chord in his memory. A
thought rose spontaneously
in his mind (She would make a good
mother) She then stopped and smiled at him, and
for a moment he
thought she heard him thinking.
"All done!"
Tenchi spit out into the sink, and rinsed out his mouth using a paper cup.
"Let's see how you taste now!" She began
kissing him, and Tenchi's resolve to wait
began to weaken. But he
somehow found the strength, breaking off the kiss. "Okay...
I'll
going to order up some breakfast, what'll you have?"
"Chocolate ice cream?"
Tenchi laughed, "Not for breakfast! How about a nice western omelette?"
Art sat in his office when his desk intercom sounded, "Sir, a package just arrived for you."
"Send it in."
A
bicycle courier soon entered, and he signed for it. Once alone in his
office, he opened
the package revealing a video tape and an
envelope. He watched the entire half hour of
recorded radar
returns for his home area. Nothing. Not a single aircraft passed
overhead
according to the data. The handwitten letter basically
outline what he had already seen.
(whatever remains, however
improbable, must be the truth)
He pressed a button on his intercom, "Get me Chris Conklin on the phone."
Shortly thereafter, sounding a bit sleepy, "Sir?"
"I need that favor, can you find me the best black bag job man in Japan?"
"I'll put out the word sir."
Art hung up and became lost in his thoughts, (A damn ninja...hmm)
After eating Tenchi called Alan and asked
for a ride to the shooting range. He met them
outside with the
jeep and drove them over. Once there Tenchi began explaining to
Ryoko
how the setup worked and Alan showed her how to use the
shotgun. Little did they know,
a small audience had gathered. Art
had given his guards strict instructions to increase
their
surveillance of the couple to see what intel they could obtain
through observation.
"So let me get this straight, I yell
'pull', and once that little orange thing launches
into the air I
blast it to bits with this gun?"
"That's all ma'am."
"Okay, here goes...PULL"
The
clay pigeon sailed through the air. Tenchi and Alan (and the hidden
guards watching
though binoculars) watched as it sailed further
and further away. It reached the peak of
its trajectory and began
descending. "Ryoko, aren't you going to..."
BOOM
She
'smoked' the clay disk out of the air on the first try, at about max
range. Ryoko
turned around and looked at Tenchi, "Did I do it
right?"
Tenchi wasn't as surpised as Alan or the other
observers. "You did great, but you don't
have to wait so long
before you shoot next time."
"Okay, let me reload
here." Alan saw how expertly she opened the action and
inserted
another shell, not believing for a second that she had
not handled a shotgun before.
Especially ot with the shot she just
made.
"PULL"
BOOM
The target disk barely made it off the launcher before she blasted it, scaring both men.
"Uh, you can wait just a bit longer than that, at least a second or two."
"Okay, sorry about that!" She said with a smile.
Ryoko easily blasted the next five
targets from the air with ease. Then she asked,"Say
Alan, is
there a way to make this more challenging?"
"Well,
ma'am as a matter of fact there is. It is a variation called skeet
shooting,
what you have been doing so far is trap shooting. In
skeet shooting the targets
emerge from different places, two
houses so to speak..."
After explaining all the
rules, he showed Ryoko the walkway and pointed out the target
area.
He gave her a different shotgun this time, one that automatically
reloaded, but
it only held three shots at a time. She showed her
how to reload it before manning the
controls. Ryoko had no trouble
blasting away all the targets, even when two were
launched at the
same time. She quickly got bored of this as well.
"Can you make it tougher?" She asked Alan.
"Well, we could go to a different course, near the tree line."
They
drove over to the next course, and along the way Alan descibed the
rules to sporting
clay shooting. In the meantime, the guards
redeployed so they could watch the amazing
performance.
Art
knew full well that nobody ever hits every sporting clay...ever.
There were just
too many variables. Once at the first station, he
reminded Ryoko, "Now remember ma'am,
the targets launch
themselves inside of a three second window after you yell
'pull'."
"Okay, let me load up again."
The
first station simulated a flock of birds by throwing four mini
targets overhead. To
be considered successful you had to hit
two.
"PULL"
After two seconds streaks of orange flew overhead and...
BOOM BOOM BOOM click
"Oops! I forgot this only holds three." Ryoko said as Alan stood gaping (She's fast!)
The next station was similar to the first, but
the targets flew past lower, and one was
yellow to simulate
non-legal game, and you lost if you hit it.
"So I'm not supposed to blast the yellow thing, but the others?"
"Yes ma'am."
"Okay...PULL"
BOOM BOOM BOOM
Naturally, she blasted all three orange ones and allowed
the yellow one to sail past,
unscathed. "Um...you only had to
hit one ma'am."
"Oh, sorry!"
"That's perfectly fine ma'am."
"Say Alan, just call me Ryoko alright? Enough of this ma'am business."
"Yes, very good. On to the next station then?"
Ryoko continued to
shoot perfectly through the next five stations before she tired
of
this as well. Tenchi watched the whole event smiling proudly,
while the guards and
Alan scratched their heads in
wonder.
"Let me get this straight, she's a
world champion clay shooter as well?" Art said
into the
phone.
"Yes sir, I saw it myself. She missed nothing, it
was incredible," said the day guard
commander.
Art hung up the phone, with more information to digest.
"What else is there to do around here?" Ryoko asked on the way back to the house.
Alan considered the question, wondering what a
young lady would enjoy. "Perhaps
you would care to tour the
gardens?"
"Nah...say, does Art have a motorcycle here?"
"Which type would you prefer...Ryoko?"
"Um...type?"
"Well, let me show you what we have..."
Inside the first
garage were different types of offroad vehicles. Ryoko's
attention
was immediately fixated on a particularly large orange
dirtbike. "What's this?"
"Oh, well I have to ask, have you ever been on one of these before?"
"Not like this one."
"Well, that would probably not be a good choice for a beginner."
"Why not?"
"Well,
that one is very powerful and difficult to control. Please, try this
one
first." Alan indicated a smaller more tame machine. "Now
I must warn you before
we start, these machines, even the tame
ones, can be very dangerous if not ridden
properly. Have you ever
driven a motorcycle Tenchi?"
"No, never. I've ridden bicycles though."
Alan smiled, "Very similar
concept. I will be taking the lead on this ride. As
long as you
stay with me, you should be at a safe speed. Now, let me show you
how
to operate these..."
Alan had Tenchi start
slowly, riding in circles. It took him a few tries to get the
feel
of releasing the clutch. Then he had him start on a small course
where he had
to practice shifting through the gears. Ryoko picked
it up much more quickly than
Tenchi, and soon was making circuits
around the house. Tenchi felt like he had the
hang of it when he
noticed his hunger.
"Hey Alan, I think I'll have lunch
before we go for that ride. You think it would be
okay if I went
to find Ryoko."
"Of course Tenchi, I will wait for you here."
Tenhi rode off in the opposite direction around the house to head off Ryoko.
The ex-pirate was pushing
the envelope as always. She remembered her ride
though Tokyo with
Greg, and the performance of this machine was disappointing
in
comparison. She managed to ride a few wheelies and use some of the
terrain
features as jumps. Unfortunately for Tenchi, she was in
the middle of another
airborne excursion when he rounded a corner.
He shouted in suprise and laid
the bike over as she passed in
front of him. She turned to see him fall and
leapt off her bike in
midair and flew towards Tenchi, afraid he had been hurt.
"Did you see that?" asked the first guard.
"What," asked the other guard, who was momentarity distracted by a mosquito in his ear.
"I dunno, it was kinda weird. She jumped off
the bike when the one kid wrecked, it just
didn't look
right."
"What did it look like?"
"I'm
not sure, it was almost like...damn, I don't know. Maybe I've
been staring too
long."
"TENCHI!"
Ryoko yelled, kneeling next to him in concern. Tenchi wasn't hurt
though,
just suprised. He reached up to pull off his helmet, then
smiled at her. "Looks like
you found another way to
fly."
"Are you hurt?"
"No, I'm fine, c'mon lets get back. I'm starved."
They rode back together, and Alan took them to have lunch.
"Hello sir?" The night guard commander said wearily over the phone.
"Yeah Chris."
"I've a name and a
number for you. They'll want to schedule an appointment with you,
at
a place of their choosing before they decide to take on the job.
Here's who you
have to call..."
After
a quick light lunch, the trio was back at the garage. Alan was
helping Tenchi
put on some of the heavier protective riding gear
when he was startled by the loud
sound of a powerful engine
starting. Before he could turn to see, Ryoko was gone.
(Oh,
this is the feeling! Much better!) Ryoko thought as she blazed off
across the
estate on the powerful race bike, her hair streaming in
the wind behind her. The
front wheel spent most of the time off
the ground, so she leaned forward so she
could give it more gas.
She took off in the general direction of the woods.
The guards
rapidly mobilized, and the day commander had one of his men go up in
the
helicopter, which had been on standby all day in case of such
an event. Within two
minutes they were airborne, off to follow the
unusual guest.
Ryoko quickly found one of the dirt roads
heading off into the treeline, and followed
it through some bends.
She threw large amounts of dirt behind her spinning tire as she
hit
the throttle coming out of turns. The road forked, and she turned
onto the road
leading towards higher ground. Soon she was climbing
a steep hill, and having a tough
time keeping the front wheel
down. She flew over the top in a big jump and landed in a
clearing.
She spun the back wheel out as she stopped, and then noticed the
chopper
bearing down on her. (Uh oh, I've got company.) Realizing
that she might be pushing the
hospitality envelope a little too
much, she waved up at the men in the helicopter.
"Ever see anyone climb that hill so fast Marty?" the guard asked as he waved back.
"Nope, hell, I can't even climb that hill on that bike!" replied the pilot.
Ryoko saw the man
in the air waving to her, and figured they were just looking out
for
her well being. Dropping the bike into first gear, she roared off
into the
woods again.
"Damn, look at her move! She's gotta be a pro!" exclaimed the guard.
"Yeah, I wish I could ride half as good as her."
Deciding
she'd had enough fun, Ryoko rode back down to the estate. She didn't
look
forward to the scolding she knew was coming from Tenchi for
her taking off. But she
had wanted to ride a fast bike so badly,
she just could not stop herself. Off in the
distance, she saw
Tenchi and Alan riding towards her. She continued on to meet
them.
"RYOKO! Don't ever do that again!"
She
suddenly found the gas tank on the motorcycle very interesting. "I'm
sorry, I
just wanted to..."
"Lets just go back, okay?"
She just nodded, and followed him and Alan as they returned to the house.
"Hamerton-san, you wish to arrange a meeting?"
"Yes, are you available to meet in Tokyo sometime next week?"
"Hai. Check into the Imperial Hotel, and we shall find you."
CLICK
(Hmm,
very melodramatic. But they are supposed to be the best.) Art
thought, as his
phone rang. "Yes...I
see...hmm...alright." (An expert motocross rider
too?
What the hell can't she do?")
Tenchi and Ryoko
walked to their room in silence. Ryoko was mentally kicking
herself
for screwing things up, and Tenchi was mentally kicking
himself for yelling at her.
(She was just having fun, and she
couldn't really hurt herself anyway. I guess I
overreacted a bit.)
Once in the room, he walked out onto the balcony and she sat
down
on the bed, looking down at the floor. He looked out at the view,
wondering
what to say. Tenchi turned towards her as she looked up
and they began to speak at
the exact same time, "I'm
sorry..."
"I was just..."
"I didn't mean..."
Finally Tenchi put up his hand, "Let me go first okay?"
She nodded.
"I'm sorry I
yelled at you. I was just worried about you when you took off like
that.
I didn't mean to hurt you like that."
"And
I'm sorry I took off like that. I was just trying to have some fun. I
didn't
mean to worry you like that."
The sheepish
little grin she had on her face was just so endearing to Tenchi.
He
began to slowly walk towards her, and he talked as he went,
"You know, it's alright.
Your wild side is one of the things
I love about you. I wouldn't want you to act
any other way. Can
you forgive me?" He finished as he stopped before her.
She
looked up at him then with that mischievous grin of hers, before
pulling him to
the bed, making him fall on top of her. They began
kissing, the little spat all
forgotten and forgiven. Ryoko even
managed to get Tenchi to break his little
resolution.
Towards
evening, Tenchi got his call from Alan announcing Arts arrival within
ninety
minutes. In the meantime, they decided to soak in the bath
for a while, and eat
after training.
Resting in the tub,
Ryoko decided to ask a few questions to clear up some things
that
had been bugging her. "Tenchi?"
"Hmm?"
"Do you think you'll ever go to Jurai?"
"Well, I've thought about it. Maybe we can stop there on our vacation?"
"Well, it probably wouldn't be such a good idea for me to go there..."
"well, I guess I won't then."
Ryoko looked up at him suddenly, intensely, "What about your title...your birthright?"
"Birthright? Did you see
how Azusa acted towards me on Earth that one time? You
really
think he would want to hand over his Empire to me? As if I wanted it
in the
first place..."
"You don't want it?" She asked, still watching him carefully.
"I don't think so, I'm kind of attached to this planet anyway."
She scooted closer to him in the water and laid her head on his shoulder, "That's good."
He smiled down at her and said, "And
you? Think you could stand spending most of your
time on Earth
with me?"
"I don't care where we are, as long as I'm with you."
"You won't get bored on this planet with me?"
She put her lips very close to his ear and whispered breathily, "Never."
A little shiver went up his
spine as her breath hit his ear, and she smiled at the
reaction
she got from him.
"So, you'd give up your Empire for me?"
"If it was mine to give up, yes."
"And you're sure that...I'm who you want to be with?"
"Am
I sure? Why do you think it took so long for me to figure this out? I
had to
be sure, because when I finally took this step, I knew
there was no going back. I
love you, now and
forever."
"Tenchi..." was all she could get out, before hugging him tight.
Tenchi and Art faced
each other in their full suits of Kendo armor, bamboo swords
held
at the ready. Ryoko sat by in silent audience. Art made it a point
not to
pay any attention to her during this bout. Tenchi felt
pretty good, despite the
heavy armor. Art attacked first, and he
used all his speed and power. Tenchi
could see the difference in
his fighting immediately. (He's more in his element
like this.)
After several strikes and parrys, Tenchi leapt back, slightly
winded.
Arts confidence was up, and rightly so. He was giving as
good as he got today.
Deciding to press this perceived advantage,
he moved in, wanting to wear his
opponent down. (His stance is
better, and he isn't over extending himself. He's
trying to wear
me down too. Well, I still have one edge...) Tenchi resorted
to
go 100 defensive, and play the waiting game. (Either he'll tire or
leave me
and opening eventually...) Art still used too much
physical power instead of
technique, and this was the flaw Tenchi
would exploit. Art began to slow, and
when he attempted a downward
strike Tenchi deflected it to the side while shuffling
away to the
left. He then brought his sword down on top of Arts, and pushed
it
around to the left and then up before snapping down diagonally
onto his host's neck.
Art stepped back breathing heavily,
and took off his face mask. Tenchi did the
same to answer the
inevitable question. "You are much better today, but you
still
need to work on your economy of motion. You rely too much on your
strength,
and therein lies your weakness. Tell me though, do you
usually train with Kendo?"
"Well, yes."
"Why
not try with bokken more often. I think you are too used to training
this
way. Variety would help you to get better."
"But this is how we fight in the Tournament, so I want to train this way"
"The Tournament?"
"Well, surely you know of the annual sword contest..."
Tenchi looked at him, not understanding.
"How do you think we get our ranking?"
"I didn't know."
"Your Grandfather never told you?"
"No, he just said I needed more variety in sparring partners."
"Well then, I suppose you'll want to go to the next one."
Tenchi considered this for a moment, "Perhaps. Shall we continue?"
They placed their masks back on and continued.
Tenchi went back to
his defensive technique, and Art tried to use
less strength and more
technique. Tenchi decided to try a fancy
move on him if the proper
opening was presented to him. He didn't
have to wait long. While
blocking a side strike from the right, he
placed his right foot behind
and to the left of his other foot and
spun around backwards swinging
his sword one handed, dropping to
his left knee and holding his other
hand back for balance. This
brought all the power physics would allow
into a crushing strike
to Arts right. The force of the blow nearly
knocked Art off his
feet as his own sword was pushed back in the weak
block he didn't
quite make in time.
Art stepped back, and removed his mask,
then took off the armor and
held his side where the last blow hit.
"Would that last hit fall
under the 'economy of motion'
rule?"
"Absolutely. Let me teach you that one."
After going over the technique with Art, he taught
him a short kata that
employed it.
Deciding he'd had enough
for the night, Art decided to bring up other
issues, "Ryoko,
I was wondering, could I ask if you would favor me with
a small
demonstration of your...abilities?"
Ryoko replied with a straight face, "You want me to assasinate you?"
Art
chuckled, a little nervously, "Well, how about some other
things,
like stealth techniques."
Ryoko thought back
to the silly movie they had watched the night before.
She
remembered one scene where the guy threw a ball on the ground and
it
made a cloud of smoke. Thinking quickly, she grabbed a water
bottle
off of Tenchi as he was in the middle of a big drink,
"Hey!"
She just smiled at him and poured some of the
water into her cupped hand
before handing the bottle back. Holding
it in front of her face she
concentrated a little, and superheated
the water as she dropped her hand
down, producing a large cloud of
steam. She then phased out of the room.
As the cloud dissipated,
Art looked wildly around the room, then up at the
ceiling (Well,
if I had any doubts, they're gone now.) Tenchi tried not
to laugh,
but he couldn't help but smile. Ryoko reappeared behind Art,
holding
the sheathed ninja sword to his neck. He jumped when he felt
the
contact, turning wide eyed to see what it was. (Where did you
come from?
And just who the hell...what the hell are
you?)
Calming himself, he said, "Well, that was
interesting. Would you two care
to join me for a late
dinner?"
"Okay," they agreed in unison.
Later
on in the dining area, "Well, I guess you would like to know
more
about the Tournament, Tenchi."
"Well, I am curious about it, and why Grandpa never mentioned it."
"well,
it's by invitation only. My ranking allows me to do this, so I'd
like
to take this opportunity to invite both of you to the next
one."
"Well, when is it?" Ryoko asked.
"They
are held yearly on the Autumnal Equinox, usually the third week
of
September. It lasts for five days."
"Where is it held?" Tenchi asked.
"I don't know yet, it is in
a different location every year. Last year it
was held on the
island of Guam."
"Sounds like fun!" Ryoko said.
Art smiled at her, "Oh, it is. Definitely. Can I expect you two there?"
Tenchi looked to the side and
narrowed his eyes in thought, "I'll have to
ask Grandpa and
Dad first."
(I almost forgot this guy is still just a kid!)
"Of course, so what do you both like to do for fun?"
Ryoko spoke up, "Well, I love going out to Karaoke bars and singing."
"I've heard you are pretty good with a shotgun too."
"Oh, that. I guess I'm alright."
"Don't be so modest, Ryoko."
"Modest, me?" She said sarcastically.
"And you Tenchi?"
"Hmm, well...being with Ryoko is all the fun I need."
Ryoko looked over at him lovingly, and grasped his hand under the table.
"Ahem...well, I have a business proposition - for both of you."
"Hmm?" both inquired.
"You are both obviously very talented
people, and as such are a valuable find.
I have positions
available for both of you working for me. Tenchi, you can
probably
tell that the art of the sword is very important to me. I would
love
to hire you full time as my personal trainer. Please don't answer
now,
take all the time you need to make that decision."
"Ryoko,
as you've probably guessed, I work in a world where the stakes are
high.
I could always use someone with your...talents. There are
many who try to spy
and steal from me, and I need an expert in
order to stop them. Again, don't
answer right away. Give it some
thought."
"We will" They said together, before looking at each other curiously.
They bid Art good evening,
and headed off to their room for Ryoko's last night
at the
Mansion.
Authors
notes:
I got the idea of Ryoko liking motorcycles from the manga
put out in graphic
novel format by Viz. Specifically No Need for
Tenchi #6 on page 43, there is
a picture of Ryoko standing behind
a fancy little racing bike. If you would
like to see it, I would
gladly e-mail it to you for the small price of a review!
Again,
thanks to all those who have read and reviewed so far. There has been
a
change of plans in my writing schedule, so keep tuned for
updates. Happy reading!
Chapter 13
A cool breeze blew across the sunbleached rooftops. It was
not refreshing however,
as it was loaded with fine dust. Sergeant
First Class Lewis cursed the dust silently,
as he took out a brush
and cleaned off the action of his rifle for the umpteenth time.
It
wasn't much longer until the sky would begin to get lighter.
"What time were they are supposed to arrive?" he asked his spotter.
Jeff, the younger man whispered back,"They
should be here now. They're running a bit
late, or our intel was
bad."
"Alright, if they don't show within half an
hour, we abort. Gotta be outta here by
sunrise."
The
two men continued to watch silently. The deadline to extract was
almost upon them
when the sound of a vehicle in the distance
reached their ears. The spotter swung his
scope to watch the
approach of the beige Toyoto Landcruiser. "There!"
The
sniper shifted his body so his rifle was aligned with the approaching
target. At
that moment, another vehicle appeared from another
direction.
"Two? Which one then?" asked the sniper.
"Don't know, could be either."
Both
vehicles pulled up in front of a cluster of buildings three hundred
yards away,
and the spotter eyed the 12 individuals as they made
their way inside, "Damn, they are
all hooded. Can't make out
any faces." He pointed his scope at the upstairs window,
and
the men could be made out in the darkness, thanks to his scopes night
vision
capability. "Alright, I can see them...but
unable to make positive i.d. of
target."
"Damn" whispered the sniper.
"Do we abort then?"
The sniper thought for a moment before answering, "Change of plan, Jeff"
"I hate it when you say that!" Whined the spotter.
The sniper grinned and started shedding unnecessary
gear. "Isn't this what you
signed up for?" He slid his
body over and indicated to his parter that he should
assume the
post at the rifle.
"Well, since you put it that
way..." The spotted grinned as he crawled over to
take the
place of the sniper.
"Okay, simple plan. Typical hunting technique. I flush 'em, you bag 'em."
At this point
Sergeant Lewis had only two items of equipment left on him.
Strapped
to his leg was a standard issue 9mm Beretta pistol,
except for the fact it had an
extended threaded barrel. Slung
across his back was a piece of gear that was anything
but
standard.
"and if I don't make it back..."
"...get to the extraction point." finished the spotter.
"Good Hunting!" said the sniper with a grin as he disappeared over the edge of the roof.
The spotter tracked his progress across the
flat terrain. The sniper used speed instead
of the usual slow
stealth, dashing from cover to cover and pausing to see if he'd
been
spotted. Using buildings and vehicles and whatever else, he
made his way to the entrance
of the target building. Pausing
behind a truck about thirty yards from his destination,
he pulled
out his pistol and screwed a silencer onto the end. There were two
guards by
the door, and he took careful aim at one. He whispered
silently through his handsfree
radio set to his spotter, "Standby,
I'm going in."
He fired twice quickly, taking down both
guards. As he ran towards the doorway, he flipped
his night vision
goggles down in front of his face. Noticing a stairway just inside,
he
quietly made his way to the top. Soon he stood before the
doorway. Closing his eyes for a
moment, he took several slow, deep
breaths. In through the nose, and out though the mouth,
focusing,
contemplating.
This was a crucial mission. His target was
until recently a little know terrorist, who had
just made a name
for himself by blowing up a U.S. Embassy in Africa. The boys at intel
had
intercepted a few cell phone calls, and along with intel
gathered from other sources, found
out that the meeting tonight
was to arrange some kind of attack on America. He didn't want
to
let this one get away.
Slowly, Sergeant Lewis reached over his
shoulder, and drew his custom made katana. He worked
closely with
the factory engineers at a Cold Steel to produce this baby. The blade
was done in
a flat black finish, and the handle was done with a
cross hatched rubber coating. He slowly
opened his eyes, switched
his sword to his left hand, then exploded into action.
Kicking
in the door, he leapt into the middle of the room. As he dropped into
a crouch, he
fired off several shots at the ones who were armed. A
few made it out the door before he
turned to shoot the others
headed that way. The pistol fired it's final shot as he dropped
it
and grabbed his katana in both hands.
Four had made it out the
door and the first two ran outside, only to be picked off by
the
spotter. The other two stayed just inside the
doorway.
Muhammad Hawari (the target) and his lieutenant had
run from the room the instant the
attacker leapt into the room,
and then watched as two of their brethren were felled
by the
distant sniper. Muhammad fancied himself as one of the ancient desert
warriors
of the Almoravid, and carried a fine scimitar of Damascus
steel with him wherever he
went. He listened upstairs as the
gunshots ceased, but the sounds of struggle had not.
He smiled as
he drew his sword and started up the stairs. He thought he was about
to
live out an old fanatsy of his - felling an infidel with his
priceless antique blade.
The scene upstairs was one of
carnage. Sergeant Lewis tore a piece of cloth from one
of the
fallen, and began wiping his blade to remove the blood. He turned as
he heard
the sound of footsteps quietly ascending the stairs.
Quickly finding his pistol, he
inserted a fresh magazine and stood
ready.
Muhammad found himself face to face with the barrel of
a 9mm and steeled himself...
for the shot that never came. "So,
swine, you wish to capture me? Bring me to your
infidel
masters?"
From the massive silhouette of the sniper, a
chesire cat grin appeared. "If you are
volunteering.
Sure."
Spotting the wicked looking sword in his enemy's
other hand he had an idea, "Are you
man enough to face me
with your blade, or will you hide behind your cowards weapon?"
"Man
enough? Coward? Pretty big words from someone who sits in safety and
sends
young naive boys to do the missions he himself doesn't have
the balls to do."
Muhammad just stared back in fury.
"I'll tell you what, you want this chance so bad..."
Sergeant Lewis pressed the button on the
side of his pistol, and the magazine dropped
to the floor. Taking
a few steps back, he rested his sword against his leg so that
he
could eject the round from the chamber. Then taking up his
sword in his right hand,
he said, "...give it your best
shot."
Grasping at this desperate chance, Muhammad
attacked. The sniper parried his several
strikes easily, then
landed a powerful punch to the terrorists nose. Reeling
back,
Muhammad looked at him in rage. "If you cannot defeat
me with sword alone, why even
bother attempting to act with honor
pig!"
"Honor? If that is your idea of honor, then blade alone it shall be."
The sniper attacked again, but
he wasn't restaining his great strength any longer. He
took one
mighty swipe, easily batting away his opponents attempt to parry, and
on the
backswing sliced a 1/2 inch deep horizontal gash across his
nose.
Muhammad was very afraid now, as he realized that the
foreigner was simply toying with
him. Blood streamed down his face
from his nose, and he wondered if he should continue
the fight or
take his chances outside.
The spotter watched the fight
through the scope on the rifle, and didn't see as the
lieutenant
retrieved an assault rifle from one of the fallen guards at the
building
entrance.
The terrorist had decided to keep
fighting after all. He now sported several gashes
across his face,
chest, and arms. Fear and anger warred in his head, and it was
anger
that won. "Why don't you just finish me, you evil
infidel!"
"Because those like you do not deserve a quick death."
Muhammad turned white at this, wondering
how long this would continue. Then deciding
he had nothing to
lose, he attacked with all of his remaining energy. The sniper
just
beat him back easily, and as he retreated backwards he tripped on one
of his
fallen comrades. As he fell backwards the sniper came face
to face with the barrel
of an AK-47 in the hands of the lieutenant
- whose head exploded as the spotter fired
off a shot. "Thanks,"
the sniper said into his throat microphone.
"Finishing
your little game so we can get the hell outta here will be thanks
enough!"
Came the reply into his earphone.
"Okay."
Rising
to his feet, the terrorist held his blade before him at the ready.
The sniper
faced him, blade held high above his head in both
hands. Muhammad rushed him, aiming
his sword at the seemingly
unprotected midsection of his adversary. Sergeant Lewis
waited
until the right moment, then brought his sword down with all his
considerable
strength. The scimitar clattered noisily to the
floor, dropped from stunned fingers.
The sniper then spun to his
right, removing Muhammads head with a backhand strike.
"Mission accomplished, we're outta here! Meet me at the extraction point."
Sergeant Lewis laughed as he watched Jeff stagger
up to him carrying all of the gear.
Sweating profusely he dropped
it to the ground and both men began rigging the equipment
for
their departure. The sound of rotors could be heard in the distance,
and the
spotted pulled out a red smoke grenade and threw it just
downwind of their position.
Once onboard the chopper and well
on their way, the spotter said, "One of these days,
your
'unconventional' methods are gonna get us in trouble."
"What
would you have had me do? If I'd of started picking them off through
the
window at random, I might have missed the target and let him
get away. Failure
wasn't an option on this mission. Why else do
you think they sent us?"
"I guess you're right Nate. Say, aren't you taking some leave time when we get back?"
"Yep, about a week."
"Going anywhere special?"
"Nope, just hanging out around base."
"Just hanging out?"
"Well, I'll be doing some sword training with a visitor from Japan."
"You and that damn sword Nate, I swear..."
Aeka
went downstairs to help her sister out setting up breakfast. As she
entered the
kitchen, she was greeted by the sight of an adult
Washuu cooking side by side with
Sasami. "Oh, good morning
Lit...um, Miss Washuu." The scientist smiled at the
confusion
of the princess. "Well, I stopped by to help, but I see you have
plenty.."
Sasami looked at her sister, who seemed a
little depressed, "Could you set the table
for me and then
round everyone up?"
"Alright Sasami." She said, a little cheered.
Aeka had been a little off since dinner the
night before. Washuu changed her 'car'
into the roomiest one in
it's database and treated them all to a night out at the
best
restaurant in town. Everyone had been laughing and joking, except
Aeka. She
had been lost in thought. Washuu noticed this, as well
as Yosho. Both hoped she
wouldn't put two and two together with
Ryoko gone. They needn't have worried about
that. Aeka simply
missed Tenchi, and even though she would never admit it, she
missed
Ryoko (just a little bit.) Things had been just too peaceful and
quiet. She
had become used to their life at the Masaki household.
Even though the three of
them mixed together was a volatile
combination, Ryoko and Tenchi were the only ones
she felt really
understood her. Ironically, it seemed that sometimes Ryoko
understood
her better than Tenchi did. One thing confusing her was
the upcoming weekend outing.
She was a little worried about
Sasami, being left out. She would be left behind with
her brother
and Noboyuki. Yosho had told Aeka not to worry about the prisoner,
he
would tend to him while they were gone. She also had her
conversation by the lake
with her brother bothering her, then her
thoughts turned to Joey. She resolved to
herself to call him
tomorrow, just to check on Ryoko of course.
After breakfast,
Yosho caught up with Washuu before she disappeared into her lab.
"If
you have a free moment, there is something I'd like to
discuss..."
"Oh, you don't have to ask, just grab me whevever you need me..."
Yosho coughed into his hand, "Ahem...well, it concerns Mihoshi."
Washuu became serious then, "Step into my lab..."
(Or
parlour, said the spider to the fly.) Yosho thought as he followed
her down
the steps.
They were soon walking through a part
of the lab that resembled one of those indoor
gardens inside one
of the big shopping malls. "So, what can I do for you."
"I've begun working with Mihoshi, using some ancient techniques..."
"Oh, I didn't know you went for blondes..."
"Ahem...well, using a combination
of hypnosis and acupuncture, I've made some
progress with her
'issues.' I think I could get further if I had more information
to
go on, but Mihoshi doesn't seem too willing to talk about her
past."
"Yes, I've run into the same problem myself. What do you have in mind?"
"Well, I was wondering if
it would be possible for you to obtain information from
the Galaxy
Police database."
"Lord Yosho! I'd have never thought you would even consider something like that!"
"To help Mihoshi, there is very little I wouldn't do. So, can you accomplish this?"
"Of course, it's nothing for the Universes Greatest Sci..."
"...Scientific Genius, yes, yes I know. Thank You Miss Washuu."
"Oh, just call me Washuu."
Katsuhito sought Mihoshi out again,
finding her in the usual spot by the lake. "Ah,
there you
are. Do you have any free time this morning Mihoshi?"
She
sat up and removed her sunglasses, "Well, let me
think...oh, I'm on vacation
aren't I? I suppose, why?"
"I would like to do another session with you, if it's alright."
Mihoshi
thought back to the last session, not remembering anything but how
good she
felt afterwards. "Sure, I'll walk up with you."
she said, standing up and grabbing
her towel.
Washuu
was digging into the subspace network (the universes equivalent of
the internet),
looking for GP message traffic. She tagged a packet
of info and followed it to a node.
"Ah ha! Here we go!"
She cracked her knuckles and started typing furiously. Thirty
seconds
later:
DING
"I'm in, now, let's see what there is to see!"
Running around in the database, she quickly
located the personnel files, and with a bit
more seaching found
the dossier of Mihoshi Kuramitsu. What she began to read
startled
her. GP academy, graduated top honors, head of her class.
Martial arts team Captain,
won numerous tournaments. Top Marksman,
best shot the Academy had ever seen. Glowing
reports from her
instructors praising her to high heaven. "So, she kicked ass in
school,
how about the real world?"
Washuu read on.
Mihoshi's initial service record was outstanding as well. She was
the
youngest GP officer ever to receive the Medal of Valor, their
highest award. She read
case after case where Mihoshi solved many
crimes and caught many bad guys. She also
saved many lives. Washuu
became skeptical of all this when she found out who her
grandfather
was. Then she hit a wall. There was a case that Mihoshi was on, and
the
files were sealed. Washuu tried cracking the encryption, but
all her efforts failed.
Then she realized, "Hey, I wrote that
encryption program! No wonder I can't break it."
Giving up,
knowing her creations were perfect, she moved past the incident to
the rest
of Mihoshi's career - which had taken a turn for the
worst. (This is the Mihoshi I
know!) Terrible performance reviews
had taken the place of commendations. Failed
cases replaced her
formerly glowing arrest record. Simply put, her performance
stunk.
(What the hell happened to her?)
At the
shrine, Yosho had Mihoshi relax again and repeated his procedure of
burning the
incense mixture and inserting the needles. He rapidly
brought her under. Yosho
had decided not to dig too deep today,
just try to get under the surface just a
little.
"Mihoshi"
"Yes?"
"I want you to think back to before you came to Earth."
"I was sent by my boss to capture Kagato."
Katsuhito
considered this for a moment, (They sent her alone to get Kagato? Did
they
want to get rid of her that bad?)
"So he ordered you to get Kagato all by yourself?"
Mihoshi became slightly agitated, "Well, he said to find him and..."
"Perhaps he only wanted you to find Kagato, and report?"
"Well, he might have meant that..."
(She heard what she wanted to hear. She must
have known Kagato was extremely dangerous,
why would she want to
take on such an impossible mission alone?)
"Mihoshi, why would you want to capture Kagato?"
"To prove myself."
"Prove what, Mihoshi?"
"That I am a capable officer!"
"Why do you need to prove that?"
Mihoshi became more upset, "To make up...to make up for..."
He didn't want to stress her
out anymore, so he decided to bring her out, "Mihoshi, you
are
back home. It is a beautiful day outside. There is a light breeze and
the sun is
shining. You are feeling happy and
carefree."
"Wheeeee!"
"Where are you now?"
"Home, on a swing! Tenchi is pushing me, and Ryo-Ohki is swinging next to me."
Katsuhito smiled at
the image. "Alright Mihoshi, I'm going to count to three,
and
clap my hands twice. Then you will wake up, feeling very
rested and refreshed."
"1...2...3"
CLAP CLAP
"Hello Grandfather, what am I...oh, you did it again didn't you?"
"Yes, how do you feel."
"Hmm...Great! But I'm hungry!"
"Care to walk with me to the house? I would enjoy some lunch as well."
After lunch, Washuu revealed her findings
to Yosho as Aeka dug up Joey and Gregs
number so she could check
on their well being, (I hope she hasn't blown up
their
place!)
It
was about one o'clock in the morning local time. Ryoko phased out of
bed so as not
to disturb her exhausted Tenchi. Her efforts were
wasted because she could have jumped
up and down on him screaming
and he wouldn't have stirred. Phasing into her outfit
with the
yellow stripes and tail, she walked to the window and stared out at
the stars.
(Come to me Ryo-Ohki) she mentally projected. Far away
in Okayama, a brown furry
bundle rolled off of Sasami's futon and
phased through the wall to the outside before
flying into the air,
transforming. (About fifteen minutes) Ryoko thought as she
walked
over to the bed, smiling down at her love. She hated
leaving, but it was for the best.
Mostly to allay any suspicions
Aeka may be forming, but also because she was distracting
Tenchi
from his training. She saw how her influence had slowed him down in
his matches
with Art, and the next one he had to spar with would
be even better. She was also not
comfortable around Art. Something
about him just bothered her, call it womens intuition.
Leaning
over, she placed a gentle kiss on Tenchi's lips and whispered softly
into his
ear, "See you later lover." Tenchi stirred
slightly and smiled in his sleep. Ryoko
sighed and phased away to
a spot thousands of feet overhead to rendezvous with her
pet.
Streaking off into the night sky, she disappeared without
a trace. Not a radar, camera,
or motion sensor tracked her
departure. Zooming along, she figured she would give Joey
and Greg
a call, but how. (Mom?)
(Yes, little Ryoko?)
(Um...I want to make a phone call, can you help?)
A screen appeared on the bridge of Ryo-Ohki with Washuu on it.
"Sure, I can patch it into your comm unit from here, just give me the number."
Ryoko gave her the number, and waited as the phone rang.
"Hello?"
"Joey hey! It's me Ryoko."
"Oh hey, what's up?"
"You busy at the moment?"
"No, we're done for the day. Early classes only on Thursday."
"Mind if I come over?"
"Uh..." Joey looked around the messy
apartment he shared with Greg, who was
passed out on the couch. He
was out late the night before, and collapsed after
work,"...sure.
Is Aeka with you?"
"Nope."
"Oh," He sounded disappointed.
"But we'll be by with her on Saturday, remember?"
"Yeah, um okay."
"Well, can you tell me where you live so I can find you?"
"Sure..."
He gave her the info, and Washuu uploaded telemetry to Ryo-Ohki
so
they could fly right there.
"When do you think you'll be here?" Joey asked.
"About five minutes." Washuu answered in Ryoko's voice.
(Mom!)
"Okay,
see you soon!" Joey said in a strained voice as he quickly hung
up and began
to furiously straighten up the apartment, shouting at
Greg. "Get up! GET UP!"
Greg stirred and pulled a pillow
over his head to shut out the commotion.
"Ryoko's coming!"
Greg jumped up suddenly and joined him in the
frantic cleaning job. Greg was shoving
things under the couch and
into the closet while Joey ran to the kitchen and started
putting
dirty dishes into their broken dishwasher. He was halfway into
vacuuming when
there was a knock at the door.
"Oh,
shit!" they sounded off simultaneously. "I'll get the
door," Joey said, "and I'll
stall her while you finish
up!"
He was about to open the door when he realized he
was only wearing a pair of shorts.
"I'll be just a moment!"
He yelled, finding his shirt stuck in the closet door.
When he
opened the door several items spilled out, along with his shirt. He
quickly
put it on and shoved the rest back in. Ryoko knocked
again, "Oh, Joey-eeeeee!"
"I'll be right there!"
He rushed to the door and opened it about six inches, peering out. "Hello Ryoko."
"Hiya! What're you guys up to?"
"Oh, just lounging around relaxing. What are you doing around here?"
"Well, I just happened to be in the area and figured I'd drop by."
Just then the phone began ringing.
"Oh, let me get that, be right back!" He said as he slammed the door.
"Hey!" shouted Ryoko, making Joey wince.
"Hello?"
"Hello, Joey?"
Recognizing her voice, Joey's mood instantly improved,"Aeka?"
Smiling that he remembered her, she
said, "I was just calling to say hello, and
to check up on
Ryoko. She's not being too much of a pain to you two is
she?"
Looking at Greg finish shoving some items into
another closet, he smiled, "Oh,
no problem, no trouble at
all."
"Well, that is a relief. You don't know how mischievous she can be."
"Say, Aeka, we're still on for Saturday, right?"
"Oh...yes of course. I'm looking forward to it."
"Great, it's all I've been thinking about lately."
"Oh," Aeka blushed slightly "Joey, may I speak to Ryoko please?"
"Certainly, hold on just a minute?"
Joey took the cordless phone with
him and pulled the door open a little, "Here,
it's for you."
Ryoko took the phone and Joey closed the door again so he
could
finish vacuuming. Looking at the door and the phone
strangely, she said, "Hello?"
"well, well. I see you have found a new place to hide from doing chores."
"Aeka?"
"Yes. I don't
appreciate the way you just took off. Poor Sasami is upset that
you
left without saying goodbye, or even that you were leaving.
None of us knew that
you had even gone away until we noticed you
missed a couple meals. We had to hear
of your trip second hand
through Mihoshi, and even she wasn't sure. It isn't fair
of you to
worry people like that."
The part that got Ryoko was
Sasami being upset. But it almost seemed as if Aeka
herself was
worried,"Sorry to have worried you, princess."
"Don't apologize to me, pirate. I could care less."
"You aren't fooling anyone you know."
"When you will be returning so I can tell my sister to make her feel better?"
"Oh...late tonight or tomorrow morning.
I'm gonna hang out with these guys for a
while yet."
"Very
well, but I'm warning you, Mihoshi and even Washuu are looking
forward to this
weekend..."
"Washuu?"
"Yes, she is going along as well."
(Oh, wonderful)
W: (I Heard that!)
R: (Seriously, who parties with their own mom?)
W: (You will, and for the weekend you can go back to calling me Washuu)
"Ryoko?"
"Oh, sorry about that. I was distracted. You were saying?"
"Oh, yes. Don't mess things up for us by wearing out our welcome with them."
"Oh don't worry, I won't. Joey just LOVES having me, here!"
"OOOOOH! You are incorrigible!"
"I'm just kidding, jeeze!"
"Very well, we will expect to see you in the morning then."
CLICK
(Hmmmm...that was a close call!)
Ryoko thought as she looked at the phone curiously,
then stopped
herself as she realized she was getting ready to phase through the
door
(Oh, yeah. That would go over really well. I have to start
being more careful.)
Joey finally opened the door, apologizing
"Sorry about that, had a few things to take
care
of..."
"Yeah, like cleaning up in a hurry..."
Ryoko laughed at Joey's expression. "I
wonder would would
happen if I opened this..." She said, indicating the
closet
door.
"No, don't!" Joey yelled as she
reached for the knob. Ryoko snickered, pulling her
hand
back.
"I'm just messing with you, calm down. So what are you guys up to tonight?"
"I'm not going anywhere."
Was Gregs response. From the way he looked it was
understandable.
"I didn't have any plans either." said Joey.
"Well,
that's okay. I'm a little tired myself. So, was that the first time
Aeka
called here?"
"Yes, to check up on you she said."
"Well, that's good. Is it alright if I hang out here for a while?"
"Please, as long as you like." said a bleary eyed Greg.
"Of course, but you'll probably be bored." said Joey.
"After the
last couple days, I can handle a little boredom guys." Ryoko
said with a
slight smile. "I'd be okay with some take-out and
a movie rental. My treat!"
Both guys seemed okay with
that, so Ryoko plopped down on the couch making herself
comfortable.
This action also caused a few items to slide out from
underneath.
Sitting next to her, while surreptitiously kicking
the offending mess back in place,
Joey asked "So what brings
you way out here?"
"Well...I need a favor from you guys. First I need to give you some background."
Ryoko
began the long story of the relationship between her, Aeka, and
Tenchi. Slightly
modified of course. "Me and Aeka just got
off on the wrong foot at first. She blamed
me for losing the man
she loved, but it wasn't really my fault. Really long story
guys,
some other time. Then we met Tenchi. It wasn't fair, since I
saw him first, but we
both kinda fell for him. We fought alot, and
I don't mean just yelling. This went on
for a long time, until
Tenchi went on a trip this summer..."
"Where'd he go?" asked Joey.
"Hold on, I'm getting to that!
Tenchi's grandfather is a big time martial arts guy, and
has been
training him since he was little. Now he's sending him around the
world to
meet a bunch of really good sword masters to help him get
better."
"That sounds really cool, I'd love a chance like that." said Joey.
"You've trained with swords?"
"Yep, four years now!"
"Well,
Tenchi's been training since he was about eight years old I think.
Anyway, like I
was saying Tenchi went on his trip, but right
before he left I think he must have made
up his mind. We're kind
of an item now, but Aeka doesn't know yet. Tenchi wanted to tell
her
in person, but he won't be back till the end of summer, so we are
kinda keeping it
secret until then."
"So what's the favor?" Greg asked.
"I was getting to that. I've been with Tenchi the last three days, and I need an alibi..."
"So you want us to lie for you?" Joey asked.
"Well, not
exactly lie...you just have to confirm that I hung out with you
guys a while.
I don't think it will involve an interrogation"
A sudden memory flashed before her eyes,
of hanging upside down
being shocked with the Master Key.
"Well, hopefully not." she amended.
"I guess we can handle that." said Greg.
"Alright, but I don't like lying to Aeka." said Joey.
"Think of it as protecting her feelings, Joey."
"Well, since you put it that way..."
"So, Joey, you like her?" Ryoko asked conspiratorially.
"Oh yeah, he's got it bad!" ribbed Greg.
Ryoko perked up, "Well then, I guess I'm your new best friend!"
"How's that?" Joey asked suspiciously.
"I'm gonna fix you up with her!" Ryoko sang.
Joey just stared, unbelieving. Then he said, "So what about Tenchi?"
"Tenchi's mine, or weren't you paying attention?"
"But she doesn't know, and still loves him."
"Is she worth waiting the summer for Joey?"
He answered without hesitation, "I'd wait years."
"Right answer. Just trust me, okay?"
"I guess so."
"And next time, don't worry about 'cleaning up' for my sake. Aeka on the other hand..."
Tenchi
woke up a little after noon. The first thing he noticed was the
absence of
a certain ex-space pirate. He had known she was going
to leave, and her words at
the airport echoed through his memory
(I'm not very good at saying goodbye...)
She had closed all
the curtains while he slept so the morning sun wouldn't wake him.
He
got up and soaked in the bath for a while before venturing out into
the mansion.
Rei ans Emi had pretty much disappeared since Ryoko's
arrival, and he wondered if
they would pop up again. Hungry, he
made his way towards the dining area. Nothing
had been made, so a
quick call to Alan on a nearby phone resulted in an excellent
meal
in fifteen minutes flat. After the antics yesterday, he decided to
take that
ride around the estate on motorcycles without having to
chase his girl down. Alan
met him at the garage. "So, where
is the young lady today, Tenchi?"
(Yeah, young in some ways, old in others) "She headed home, things to do you know."
(How does she do that?) Alan thought, having heard
the story of her arrival. Now
the story of her sercet departure.
Of course, all the staff had heard the rumor
that she was a
ninja.
"I see. Ready?"
They put on the riding
equipment, then took a nice leisurely ride around the edge of
the
woods, occasionally taking a trail through the trees. Tenchi enjoyed
the ride
very much. He wouldn't get to drive back home until he
graduated High School, so
he figured he'd have his chance now.
On
trip around the area was enough for one day, considering the training
ahead and
the night before.
Tenchi rested and meditated
until Art's evening arrival. He was waiting for him in
the
training room when the sound of the helicopter indicated his return.
Art had
meditated on the helicopter to save time. He wasn't using
it to prepare for the
evening of sword play, however.
"So
Tenchi, do we train with Kendo again?" Art smiled, knowing that
he was better
in the cumbersome armor.
"Well, I'd
rather we work with bokken today. In order for you to grow as a
swordsman,
you have to change things up more."
"Very well."
Once Art was in his training attire, they faced
off and began circling. Art was going
to try and take Tenchi's
advice today, and work on his so called 'economy of motion.'
Art
attacked first, and Tenchi stayed on the defensive, using the tactic
that had
worked so far. He saw that Art was trying to use more
technique in his form than
brute strength, so he held back when
several openings in his guard presented themselves.
(No sense in
discouraging him. How many years did Grandpa hold back on me now?)
Art's
technique needed a little more refinement, so instead of
giving him a good wallop, Tenchi
called a time-out. "Alright
Art, I want to show you something. It's a way of putting
a great
deal of power into your strikes. First we'll work on your
downstrikes. Now
remember, the power shouldn't come from your
arms."
"I know, I know. 'Our strength is rooted in the Earth'"
"So you can retice it, but do you know
what it means? You are very strong Art, but you
have to remember -
you must use your legs more than your arms."
"Well, I know that the more powerful strike is generated when you step forward..."
"Yes, exactly! Your body is like a
whip, or a bow. You have to use it all, or else
your arms will
tire too quickly, no matter how much strength you have. In fact,
when
your technique is perfected, you use almost no arm strength
at all."
"Well...show me."
They stood side by side, "Now, think of your forearms as an extension of your sword."
"Okay."
"Now, your elbows become your hands, gripping the bottom of the extended sword."
"Alright."
"Now face me,
and strike. I will block, and I want you to feel the extra power
you
are generating now."
After a few downstokes,
Tenchi felt the power increase in Art's form, and noticed the
bigger
man smiling.
"Do you see now?"
"Yes, yes I do. That's quite a trick."
"And that's just the
beginning. The same technique applies back at your shoulders, and
all
the the way to the ground. Since your legs are the most powerful,
logically the
swing should begin there."
Tenchi worked
with Art for the next hour, improving his power greatly. Art was
very
happy, as he had heard of this before, and some had even
tried to teach him, but the
way Tenchi explained it made it all
come together for him. (Now I've got a better
shot at beating
Nate. Even though he is so damn strong, this should make me a
better
match for him.) Art thought with a smile.
"Well,
it seems as though you have a good grasp of this, let's move onto
side strikes.
You really have to get your hips into those..."
Tenchi spent another hour teaching
Art the way to adapt his
newfound power into side and diagonal strikes. Then he spent
another
hour showing him how to apply it to blocks. Art was very excited
about learning
this new skill and Tenchi was happy that he was
able to teach it successfully. It was
after 10 o'clock that Art
reluctantly called a halt.
"Tenchi, I'm starved, and have to get up early tomorrow. Join me for a late dinner?"
He agreed and soon they were changed and in the customary dining area.
"So where is Ryoko today?"
"Um...she left last night."
Disappointed sounding, "Oh, I thought perhaps she would have had an answer for me."
"Well,
to tell you the truth, before I could even consider your offer
myself, I have
to finish High School."
(Damn, only in High School! He's going to be so much better in a few years.)
"Also,
Ryoko wouldn't want to be working around here if I wasn't with her,
so she
will not have an answer for you until I do."
"I see. Tenchi, may I be blunt?"
"Of course." (Uh oh, what's up now.)
"I am a swordsman, if nothing else.
All this," he indicated the house around them, "is
secondary
to that. I have given up millions in order to pursue the goal of
increasing
my skill. I have trained with many of Japan's greatest
sword masters. But what they
couldn't teach me in a span of years,
you have just shown me in a few hours. You have
a way of opening
my eyes, a teaching style I respond to. What would it take for you
to
remain here until the end of summer, training me? Name your
price."
The crown prince of the mightiest Empire in the
Galaxy looked across at table at his host,
wondering how to
respond without offending him.
"Art, I have commitments
to keep. There are eight more out there who are expecting me
to
show them the same courtesy I have shown you."
"Driving a hard bargain, are we?"
"It's not about money Art.
I am making this trip for a reason, meeting people like you
in
order to increase my skill, not my bank account."
"Are
you quite sure? I could pay you enough that you wouldn't have to
finish school, you
wouldn't have to work again a day in your
life!"
"It is a generous offer, I agree. But I cannot accept."
Art was exasperated, (is he wealthy
already?) but kept his cool. "Very well. You do as
you must.
Just remember, the offer still stands, whenever you are ready to
accept it."
"Thank you for understanding, Art."
(Well, I don't understand. This or the other
matter...) "I suppose Ryoko used her
'special skills' when
departing last night."
"Well, I don't even know exactly when she left, or how."
"That's another
matter I'm curious about Tenchi. You both seem so young, and in quite
a
serious relationship considering your age." (And how long
will it last?) Art thought.
"well, Ryoko and I have alot of history together. It's a long story."
Taking that as
the customary sign of ending that line of discussion, Art decided to
turn
in for the night. "Well, please don't forget my offer.
Good night, see you tomorrow
evening."
Tenchi said
good night and lingered a while longer, as he was hungrier than
usual. When
he finally went to bed for the evening, he fell into a
very deep
sleep.
Sasami
made her way down the steps in the morning to make breakfast. On the
way,
she heard noises coming from the kitchen. As she entered, she
was suprised to see
Ryoko well into the preparation of the morning
meal. What suprised her the most
was the fact that there were two
of her.
"Good Morning Sasami!" They sang in unison.
Ryoko #1 continued the preparations
while #2 scooped the little
girl up in her arms, "You just relax this morning
kiddo!"
She carried her in to the couch, setting her down. Kneeling in front
of
her she said, "Sasami, I'm sorry I took off like that
without saying anything. I'm
going to make it up to you though,
okay!"
Sasami smiled up at her friend, "It's okay
Ryoko, you don't have to! I just missed
you mostly. I'm glad
you're back!"
"Well, you relax anyway. Let me handle
this, think of it as a test. And you will
grade me when it is
done."
"Okay!" Sasami was now looking forward to see if her teaching worked.
The Ryoko 1 and 2 were soon
setting the table, and Sasami went to gather everyone.
Yosho
wandered in just as everyone was getting seated. Everyone greeted
Ryoko in
their own special way.
"I'll expect you at the shrine this evening for triple training..."
"Hi Ryoko! I can't wait to see Disney..."
"I see you have decided to grace us with your presence..."
(So, did you do what I told you...)
(Mom! Please!)
(Remember to start calling me Washuu again, if we live to see the weekend)
(Well, you cooked this morning alone, right?)
(Shhh! Don't tell anyone. And thanks for the vote of confidence...MOM!)
Everyone enjoyed their breakfast, not
saying so, but it was obvious from the
way they all were eating.
As everyone was finishing up Sasami asked, "So, was
everything
okay?"
"It was good!"
"Another excellent meal."
"Delicious as usual."
(No comment)
(And from you, that's better than something.) Ryoko
laughed at the annoyed expression
this comment made on her
mother's face.
Sasami then began, "Well, I di..."
Ryoko clamped her hand over her mouth, c'mon Sasami, let's get to cleaning up!"
After they disappeared
into the kitchen, Aeka said, "Well, Ryoko certainly seems to
be
in a good mood today." Not sounding too happy about
it.
Washuu noticed, "I guess she is just happy to be home."
"I doubt that." Aeka said as she got up from the table to go outside. (What is she up to?)
"Why wouldn't you let me tell them?" Sasami asked quietly in the kitchen.
"I want them to find out after lunch, okay? I'll make that too."
"You will? It was really good, you know. I'm proud of you!"
Ryoko smiled at the compliment from her friend, "Thanks, it means alot to hear it from you."
Sasami gave her a big hug then Ryoko split in two
again, "I'll wash and dry, if you go get
the
dishes."
"Okay!"
Lunch was a repeat
performance of breakfast. Washuu even decided to feed her daughters
ego
by telling her how it was. After everyone was finished Ryoko
nodded to Sasami and she made
her announcement. "I just
wanted everyone to know, I didn't do any of the cooking
today!"
"Then who...?"
"These are leftovers from yesterday...?"
"I see you are learning other things just as well as sparring Ryoko." Yosho said.
Aeka was incredulous, "Ryoko...cooked this?"
Ryoko was all smiles, "Yep! Did it all myself."
"Well, I must admit, it was all very good."
"Wow Ryoko! Hey Sasami, could you teach me to cook too?" Mihoshi asked.
"He he, um...later on. I still have alot to show Ryoko." Sasami answered nervously.
"Oh, okay!
There was a knock on the door, and Mihoshi went
to answer it this time. The nervous mailman
was once again
dumbstruck for a moment at the sight of another beauty at the
door.
"Can I help you?" Mihoshi asked.
Shaken from his stupor, "Uh...just sign here please."
Taking
his pen, she made a little doodle in the indicated place, "There
you go!" she
said, and began closing the door.
"Wait ma'am, your envelope!"
"Oh, thank you!" Mihoshi
took the envelope and went back inside. "Grandfather! A
letter
came for you!"
Sasami and Aeka came running up, then
stood waiting for Katsuhito, who approached at
a more sedate pace.
Opening the envelope, he shook three smaller ones out. He tucked
one
into his robe, and looked at the other two before shaking his head
negatively to
the girls. He caught Washuu before she descended
into her lab. "I believe this is for
you." Washuu looked
at it curiously for a split second before realization dawned:
Dear Washuu,
I'd really like to thank you for the phone and the
picture you gave me
to take along. It really means alot to me. I'm
having a great time
out here. I was really glad to see you and
Ryoko getting closer before
I left. Take good care of her for me,
would you? Good luck with all
your experiments!
Tenchi
Washuu smiled (So he didn't forget me.) "So who else got a letter today?"
"Just myself and Noboyuki," Then he
looked around the room quickly before
continuing more quietly,
"grouping you with us shows what he honors you as."
"Thank
you, Yosho." Washuu then entered her lab, and in her inner
sanctum,
composed a little letter of her own:
Son-in-law,
Now,
now my dear Tenchi, don't be mad at me. After all, you will be my
son in law
sooner or later. Might as well get used to your new
title...
I won't bother to ask how you are doing, I know you
must be very tired ... after so
much exercise. My daughter is the
best warrior, don't let her wear you out now
Tenchi dear. She
takes after her mother after all.
Take care of her, and show her a good time. Hint She loves to cuddle.
Mom
Grinning
evilly, in a playful sort of way, she stuffed it into an envelope
and
quickly found Katsuhito, "Would you please send this with
the next bundle, Yosho
dear?"
"Yes, I will put it with the others. It shall be sent out by special dispatch today."
"So, you going to hold down the fort this weekend with Noboyuki and Sasami?"
"Yes, a night out for all you young ladies is far overdue."
"A word of
caution...watch Sasami around our 'guest', she doesn't see him for
what
he really is."
"I shall."
"Well, on that note...gotta go doll myself up!"
Then she was
off. Ryoko, Aeka, and Mihoshi were all together, deciding what to
wear
and pack. Aeka did Ryoko's hair while Mihoshi did her nails,
then they switched off
until they were all done. The three came
downstairs, looking all beautiful and ready
to go, and waited by
the door for Washuu. Yosho walked in and saw the women, and for
a
moment their combined beauty almost made his disguise slip. Sasami
came in too, and
she looked a little down. Ryoko noticed this
immediately and ran over to her. "Hey,
if you want to Sasami,
I'll have Ryo-Ohki bring you to meet us at Disney tomorrow!"
Sasami
cheered immediately, "Okay! Thanks Ryoko!" And she pulled
her into a hug that
would have made her mother Misaki proud.
Gently prying herself loose, Ryoko looked up
in time to she her
Mother enter the room.
Washuu had decided to appear about as
old as the other girls. She was dressed in a
pink top that left
her belly bare, and a matching short skirt. Yosho saw this and
his
disguise did slip for an instant, but nobody noticed because they
were looking
at Washuu. Her hair was shorter, but still down past
her shoulders. It was styled
to have some curls, and with a touch
of make-up the overall effect was
absolutely
stunning.
(Mom...)
(Call me Washuu this weekend, remember...sheesh.)
"Ready everyone? Lets load up!"
Washuu followed the girls out, winking at Yosho
over her shoulder as she closed the
door.
"Shotgun!" Ryoko yelled.
"Hmm?" Aeka asked.
"That means I call the front seat."
"I hardly feel that is an appropriate way to claim your spot."
"It's traditional here on Earth for road trips." Mihoshi added.
"Oh, very well. I suppose if it is the local custom, I must accept it."
"Damn right."
Washuu had changed
the car into a red Mustang convertible (coincidently matching
the
color of her hair) and the girls loaded in.
Pulling out onto the road, Ryoko said, "Hit it M...I mean Washuu."
She complied, roaring off down the road headed for a girls night out.
Authors notes:
I get e-mails from worried readers thinking I might not
finish this. Rest assured,
I will. If I die before it is finished,
I will have all my notes e-mailed to my
favorite authors so they
might get together and finish for me. I would like to
thank
Malena, author of "The Sea of Change" for her
contributions. I couldn't
have done it without you! I want to send
a big thank you again to all who have
posted reviews on
and those who e-mailed me after reading my
story on
You guys keep me going! Now get out there and finish
those
fics, please!
Chapter 14
After losing a few police cars that had begun chasing them,
Washuu decided it
was time to change appearences. The car
shimmered and changed into a more
modern Lincoln Contintental and
she brought the speed down to more reasonable
levels. Ryoko had
enjoyed every minute of it, seeing a bit of herself in
Washuu
during some of the high speed runs. So did the feelings toward
her
mother move ever closer to her heart, and their relationship
evolved again.
Aeka had left a permanent handprint on the inner
doorhandle, while Mihoshi
had simply fallen asleep. They covered
about half the distance to Kyoto in
this manner, before slowing
down. Washuu suddenly became bored with driving
and there was a
flash, and their surroundings instantly changed. Ryoko sat up
in
interest, and Aeka in fear, "What was that?" They sounded
off simultaneously.
"Oh, just a little shortcut is all." Washuu snickered.
"Cool" was all Ryoko had to say.
"You mean all that madness behind us was completely
unnecessary?" Aeka
asked in a voice growing from fear to
anger.
"As unnecessary as this trip I'd say," Ryoko said smiling.
"We could have a good time without the danger..." Aeka retorted.
Washuu cut her off, "There
was never any danger, this is the safest car on
the road...here
watch..."
At that, Washuu swerved off the road,
straight towards a tree that must
have been four feet across at
the base. Aeka's face turned as white as
the moon, and at the
moment of impact...the car and everyone in it
phased through
safely.
Ryoko was beside herself with laughter, and when
Aeka's heart began beating
again, it seemed that all the blood in
her body was pumped into her face,
for it turned a deep shade of
red. Before she could voice the impending
scream, Mihoshi sat up
and sleepily asked, "Are we there yet?"
For some
reason, Mihoshi's obliviousness to the whole incident made Aeka
think
before she screamed out her anger, and as she paused, her
temper
cooled quite a bit. Sitting back, she began to consider the
relationships
of all in company.
The way they lived
together, laughed together, and even fought
together.
Comrades-in-arms...friends...even sisters? Well,
maybe that was
a bit of a stretch... This sudden and shocking
consideration wiped away the
last of her anger. Sisters? Well...
Yosho's words struck her again at that
moment, as she though of
her social status. As her life had flashed
before her eyes prior
to running through the tree, so now did it again,
only this time
she saw all her words and deeds from a new perspective.
So long
and deep was her thought that she hardly noticed the car coming to
a
stop in front of a hotel.
"Princess...hey
Princess...Earth to Aeka!" Ryoko shouted at last,
bringing
her out of her reverie. "Oh, we are here? Where are we?"
"Kyoto
Princess...halfway to Tokyo, we're gonna tear up the town
here
tonight! C'mon, let's go!"
A bellmen loaded their
bags on carts while a valet took the car to
parking.
"Washuu...will he...?" Ryoko began.
"He'll
be fine, the inside of the car changes too, and I have an
operating
mode for just such occasions." Washuu answered
while tipping the valet
handsomely.
After they got checked
in, they were followed by an entourage of bellmen
to their rooms,
far more than necessary it seemed. The best rooms had
been
available that night, and Washuu booked four of them. Aeka
couldn't
help but notice how generously all the bellmen (even the
extras) had been
tipped. She remembered Ryoko's comment about some
of Washuu's work in the
lab involved making money. A year ago,
such a revelation would have set
Aeka onto Washuu with a very long
interrogation, but Aeka's relationship
with Washuu was evolving as
well.
Eager to set out, they spent very little time in their
rooms freshening up,
and went to the front desk of the hotel to
find a good place to go for the
evening. The man at the front
desk, thinking them a group of Westerners,
recommended to them a
place that catered to such. They took a cab to the
place, since
drinking and driving is never a good idea (although Ryoko was
the
ultimate designated driver...she wanted to keep her buzz.)
When
the four of them walked into the bar, they turned all heads and
paused
all conversation. It was not a loud music playing dance
club, there was Rock
music playing at a level that permitted
conversation. There was a dance
floor, pool tables, dart boards,
and a few tables and booths besides the bar.
Several television
monitors mounted about the place were showing televised
western
sport events
Finding themselves a booth and settling in, the
girls began checking out the
crowd. About a third of them were
Westerners, but the rest were mainly
Japanese. They weren't on the
prowl tonight, but it didn't prevent them
from checking out what
guys there were. Washuu spotted one who looked pretty
good to her,
he looked to be about half Japanese. The processing power of
her
brain turned to the task of figuring out what the other half was.
Ryoko
came back with some drinks, because she had been too
impatient to wait for
service at the booth. Finding her
traditional drinks were too strong to her
new taste, Ryoko had
found a new love in wine and champagne. For Aeka and
Mihoshi both
she went with Daquari's, and Washuu had relayed to her through
the
mind link to get her a Mimosa. For herself, a whole bottle of
White
Zinfandel. Noticing her mother and her thoughts, she said
out loud, "You
know, it would be easier if you asked him."
Washuu looked up, and Ryoko
saw the uncertainty in her mothers
face. Seeing the hesitation there, she
made a "c'mon"
gesture with her hands.
Washuu got up and walked over to where
the man was playing pool, and sat
on a nearby stool and watched
for a bit. Washuu had never seen the game
played before, although
she had heard of it. He saw her watching, but he
pretended to take
no notice, as he was a bit of a player in more than just
pool. His
name was Kenji, but he prefered to be called Kenny. Washuu
said
nothing as she watched him win three games in a row, and
learned
enough of the game in that time to try her hand at it. She
placed a few
100 yen coins in the next slot on the table to
reserve her turn. Kenny
caught her eye at that moment, smiling in
the way that seemed to work
best on the ladies. Washuu smiled
back, and quickly looked away towards
her daughter with a warning
look to keep her thoughts to herself. She
found the man
attractive, but wasn't interested in anything more than
playing
the game with him. After a couple more games, it was her turn.
Kenny
was still on the table, undefeated.
"You seem to be pretty good at this," she began.
"I do alright," he replied, with false modesty.
"Well, you'll have to
take it easy on me, this is my first time," she
said
coyly.
"Well, since you are new at this, I'll teach you too."
Washuu then gave him her best smile, which was far
better than his. For
just a moment, he lost his cool and almost
tripped on his own feet when
going to get the triangle for setting
up the table. Ryoko watched all
this with interest, dividing her
time between watching and talking about
the guys in the bar with
her friends.
"Okay, I'll break first," said Kenny.
He held back a bit on the break, so
that none of the balls sank.
"Okay. your turn. Right now you can sink
any ball but the
black one, but whatever you sink, that is the type you
must play
for the rest of the game."
Washuu saw an easy one, where
the ball was right in the pocket. She had
watched Kenny hit them
pretty hard most of the time, so she decided to do
the same. She
hit it too hard, and the ball bounced right back out of the
pocket.
"oh no, too hard. Sometimes hard is good, but usually it is
best
to start out soft, like this." He took his shot, and he
hit it just hard
enough that the ball barely made it to the
pocket. "Now I like to start
out soft," he sank the
next, "And then hit a little harder" he sank the
next
shot with a hard strike, "And then..." the next shot was
so hard
it would seem the balls would crack. "But you don't
just wack the hell
out of them, you must also consider position. I
have to make sure the ball
stops in the right place." He
purposely began taking very difficult shots,
so as to give her a
better chance. He was on a roll though, and missed
a shot on
purpose to give her a chance. "Well, I've gotten most of
my
balls out of your way. Lets see how you do."
Washuu
stepped up to the table then. She had long since grasped the
physics
and dynamics of the game, she just needed to work on how hard
to
hit the ball. She sank her first, and then the next with ease.
She
could have taken another, but decided to miss the next. She
was going
to have some fun.
Kenny made his next shot, but
missed the next, knowing that playing too
well didn't always
endear him to the pretty ladies. As Washuu lined up
her next shot,
she began to pose a bit suggestively, really catching
his eye, "So
what's your name?" she asked, while nailing a perfect
bank
shot.
"Kenny," he replied, hardly noticing the shot.
"Western name huh? You aren't all Japanese are you?"
"Uh, no. My mother is Irish, my father is Japanese."
Washuu was standing in front of him now, and
turned away towards the
table, bending over farther than necessary
to take a very difficult
shot, involving a bank to a combination -
the only reason she chose that
shot was because it put her in the
present position to mess with him.
This time he noticed the
shot, and recovered a bit from the planned
distraction, "Wait
a minute, you didn't call that?"
"Hmmmm?" she asked still bent over the table.
"A shot like that, you
should call it, cause I don't know if you sank
what you were
trying for."
"Ohhhh...ok. I didn't really try that
time, it was just lucky I got
one in," she said looking over
her shoulder, batting her eyes.
She stood back up and allowed
him his next shot. He'd lost his cool
though, because Washuu had
him flustered. He sank his next shot, but
sank the cue ball as
well.
"Oh, its my turn now right?" She then did a
combination she knew to be
illegal, hitting one of his balls first
to knock one of hers in.
"You can't do that, not first in a combination."
"Oh, I'm sorry, you don't want me playing your balls?"
Kenny took his shot then, but he hit
it too hard because as the cue ball
continued on the table it hit
the eight ball into a pocket.
"Oh, what does that mean?" Washuu asked, playing dumb.
"Oh, I lost," said Kenny, feeling like a stupid teenager.
"So I won!" Washuu said, jumping up and clapping her hands.
"Yes, say, you never told me your name?"
"Washuu. You want to play again Kenny?"
"Sure," as he racked the
balls, he knew she was just messing with
him to throw him off his
game. He didn't believe that was her first
game at all. Time to
get serious.
Washuu sank three balls on the break, "So what does that mean?"
"You decide, you sank both kinds, so you can pick."
Back at the booth, both Ryoko
and Aeka noticed a change come over
Mihoshi. It wasn't the first
time they had seen it. Ryoko had
first noticed it when she used
that trick to find out if Tenchi had
kissed Aeka goodbye or not,
and Aeka first noticed it at the going
away party for Tenchi. She
became more coherent and sensible the
more she drank. It was kind
of fascinating though, listening to this
new Mihoshi. In fact, she
dominated the conversation.
"Now look at those two over
there - you can tell he did something to
make her mad - just
watch..." she said while pointing out a couple.
Ryoko
and Aeka didn't see what she meant, but when the guy got up to
get
drinks, the girl visibly relaxed, and looked about the room as
if
trying to find a way out. Fascinated by this perception of
Mihoshi,
she decided to put her to the test, "How about
Washuu and that guy over
there?"
"Oh, that guys
has the hots for Washuu bigtime, and she has him eating
out of her
hand, but Washuu is just messing with him. She likes to
play with
players I think."
Ryoko could see in her mothers mind
that Mihoshi was absolutely right.
She didn't want to ask her how
she figured this stuff out, because her
mind was a sensitive
subject right now. Instead she decided to see how
she would do on
a pool table. "Let's join them, I wanna play too."
With that, the three girls went over to get in line to play.
Washuu
had just finished running the table, and sank the eight ball for
the
win just as the girls came over. "Maybe I can get some
competition
now." Washuu smirked, while Kenny decided to sit
back and spectate, he
had been beaten badly, but the view he had
of the newcomers sorta helped
him feel better.
Ryoko had
seen pool played before tonight, but never actually tried it.
Washuu
sank four balls on the break and ran the table again. Pouting,
Ryoko
said, "Well, if you are going to keep that up all night, we
may
as well make this interesting. Taking three empty beer
glasses, she
blocked off three of the corner pockets, leaving one
corner open on the
opposite side from the rack, and the side
pockets. "And if you break
a glass, it's an automatic loss."
she added.
Washuu paused just a moment before the break,
calculating in her head.
She didn't manage to sink anything this
time. Ryoko picked up a cue
stick for the first time, chalking it
up while eyeing the table. Her
mind was in high gear, and she
picked out several possible shots. "I
have to call the
combinations, right?" She asked, looking at Kenny for
the
first time. "Yes, and the table is open, so you can use any ball
in
any combination you like." He felt silly explaining it to
someone he was
sure already knew, but he was playing along with
it. Ryoko said, "Okay,
I'm going to hit the cue ball to that
purple one, it's gonna bounce off
that cushion, then it will hit
this yellow one, which will bounce off
this cushion, and then hit
the red ball into the side pocket." Without
really looking or
seeming to concentrate, she hit the cue ball, and the
shot went as
called, with the red ball just barely rolling over the edge
into
the pocket. Piece of cake Ryoko thought.
"Okay, now I'm
gonna hit the yellow one, and it will go into the side,
then the
cue ball will bounce off that cushion and hit the orange ball,
which
will glance off that blue ball and go into the corner pocket."
Again,
the shot went as called. Even Washuu was impressed. The next
few
shots went about the same, until Ryoko finished running the table
and
sank the eight. A larger audience than just Kenny began to
form
around the table. "Okay Mihoshi, your turn!" Ryoko
declared.
Ryoko racked up the table, and Mihoshi looked
through the available cue
sticks, hefting them to check their
weight, and eyeing them to see if
they were straight. Finally she
decided on one. Ryoko took the beer
glasses out of the pockets for
this game. "You go ahead and break 'em
Mihoshi." Ryoko
said.
Mihoshi turned to Kenny and said, "Hi, I'm Mihoshi,
pleased to meet you."
She put out her hand and Kenny shook it
in the Western fashion of greeting.
With that she turned,
lined up her shot, and broke. The eight
ball somehow managed to
find it's way into a pocket. Ryoko and Aeka just
looked at each
other, shugged their shoulders, and said in
unison,"Typical
Mihoshi."
Mihoshi then asked "What happens if somone sinks the eight ball on the break?"
"That would be an automatic win." Kenny informed her.
"So I won then! Yay!"
Becoming
quickly bored with the game, Washuu asked Kenny where they could
find
a dance club. He immediately suggested one, and offered them a
ride.
They accepted, and Kenny took out a cell phone and make a
call. "Come on
with me!" They all went outside to a
waiting limo. The driver got out and
opened the door for them, and
they all climbed inside. Apparently Kenny
came from money. "You
have to tell me how you learned to play pool like
that," he
asked, once inside the car.
"I told you, it's my first time," said Washuu.
"And mine," said Ryoko.
"Yeah, whatever...anyway, where are you all from?"
Aeka spoke up quickly, "We come from many
places, but where we come from
doesn't matter, only that we are
going on together."
Ryoko looked at Washuu, and through
their mind link Ryoko asked, "What's
got into her?"
Washuu just mentally shrugged her shoulders. Kenny decided
he
wan't going to get any straight answers out of this bunch, so he
asked
them what they would like to drink. The back of the limo had
a wet bar.
SOon they were at at the front big dance club, and the
line to get in was
very long. Instead of pulling up front, the
limo went around a corner and
brought them to the back entrance.
Kenny led them inside though to the
main dance floor. The music
was pounding, too loud to even hear yourself
think. Ryoko grabbed
Mihoshi and Aeka in each hand and pulled them into
the midst of
the throng. Kenny grabbed Washuu and took her to another
dance
floor higher up. For the first time in thousands of years,
Washuu
began to dance, and what a dance it was. Kenny quit trying
to keep up
after a while, and asked if she wanted to take a break.
Washuu just shook
her head no and lost herself in the dance again.
The DJ in his booth soon
noticed the beautiful redhead on the
upper dance floor and changed some
settings on the light control
panel. A mix of red lights, strobes, and
smoke machines changed
the upper dance floor into a surreal scene. Washuu
took little
notice, and danced even harder. SOon more and more of the club
stood
transfixed, as the dance of the fiery lady continued. Ryoko wanted
to
share in the glory, and forced her way up onto the floor with her.
Soon
the two were in sync, but not exactly the same - just one
dance complementing
the other. Aeka watched in awe, but soon
realized the attention they were
getting wasn't exactly
desireable. She began forcing her way towards the
two, but the way
seemed blocked, try as she might. Soon the crowd began a
clapping
and stomping in rhythm with the dance, and everone in the club
with
the exception of Aeka seemed under a spell. She then realized
Mihoshi
wasn't nearby, and began looking for her. When she finally
found her it
was on the upper floor, dancing along with the other
two. And it wasn't
a clumsy attempt either, she blended together
with the others perfectly.
All of a sudden, a strange longing to
join them seized her. She resisted
it at first, but then she went
with it, wondering why she had resisted at
all. When she gave in
fully, she found her way to the upper floor easily
with no
resistance. Soon, she was lost in the dance with the other
three.
Washuu and Ryoko were having a blast, loving the attention
they were getting.
After a while, Ryoko noticed that things were a
little off. Aeka seemed to
be in a state of euphoria. Mihoshi
seemed oblivious to the oddness, and
enjoying herself immensely.
And the crowd...the way they were acting
seemed a little off -
alot like Aeka...Then she looked at her mother.
If the way Aeka
and the crowd was acting weirded her out, Washuu completely
blew
her away.
She seemed larger somehow...larger than life. Her
movements were not
copmletely natural, and her eyes...something
about her eyes...
"Mom?" she voiced through the mind
link, and Washuu turned towards her,
seeming to look down from on
high, and held her daughter in a loving and
benevolent gaze. "Mom,
this is enough, something is wrong, look at Aeka!"
But though
the link came a voice that was Washuu...and not Washuu...
with
words that Ryoko would never forget..."All that is wrong,
will
soon be set right...it will not repeat again, fear not, my
daughter."
Ryoko thought to herself, "Alright, I've
had enough of this." She sent a
single fine bolt of plasma
into the DJ booth, causing the music to come to
a complete stop.
The spell was broken, and Ryoko grabbed the other three
in a group
hug and phased them all outside. As Aeka looked about in
confusion,
Ryoko hailed an approaching cab. Mihoshi was whining, "Why
did
you do that Ryoko, I was having so much fun!" Washuu was
gripping her
forehead in her hand, with her head bowed down. The
cab pulled up and
Ryoko herded them all inside, telling the driver
the name of their hotel.
Mihoshi sat pouting all the way back to
the hotel, Washuu didn't move or
say a word, and Aeka looked like
someone who just woke from a dream - a
good dream it was
disappointing to leave. At their rooms Ryoko told the
other two
she wanted a word in private with her mother. They both seemed
very
tired all of a sudden, and agreed readily.
Finally Ryoko had
her mother alone in her room. "Alright, would you mind
telling
me what the hell that was all about?"
Washuu took her
hand off her head, and looked up at her daughter. In her
eyes was
a great weariness and a little confusion, "I don't know."
"YOU
DON'T KNOW? Why the hell is that!? And what about that 'All that
is
wrong, will soon be set right' crap you said, what the hell
was
that supposed to mean?!"
"Please stop
shouting...let me just rest for a minute, okay?"
Ryoko
just nodded assent, and Wahuu opened up the stocked refrigerator
and
produced a bottle of her favorite Nikka Whiskey. "Oh good, just
the
thing..." And she upended the bottle, emptying it
quickly in front of
the astounded Ryoko. Taking a seat and putting
her feet up, Washuu put
her head back and closed her eyes. Just as
Ryoko was going to shout
again in impatience, Washuu began..."I
don't know what is was that
happened back there, but the music,
the lights, the dancing...all I
remember is that...I
remembered..."
She was silent for a while, and before
Ryoko could ask for clarification,
she began again..."You
know how you can go back so far in your memory, and
then there is
nothing?" Ryoko nodded, "It's kind of like that...I
know
how it feels to you. I have the same problem."
"But tonight...what was...?"
"All I can remember was a
feeling. I had a feeling in the time before, when
I could remember
sometimes - that I shouldn't remember...please don't ask,
I
don't understand myself. But this time...I had a different
feeling,
that it is okay to remember. But the time isn't right
yet. I know you
don't understand...neither do I?"
"But
what did it mean, you said, 'All that is wrong, will soon be set
right,
it will not repeat again, fear not, my daughter.' You never
think aloud
like that..."
"I said that?"
Ryoko
nodded. Washuu bowed her head in thought and was silent again for
a
while. Ryoko was about to ask her something else when she
noticed the
regular rise and fall of her mother's chest. She had
fallen asleep.
Bowing her head and sighing, Ryoko shimmered out of
existence and reappeared
in her own room. She stripped and settled
down in her private bath, and
forgot about the whole incident for
now. The bath felt too good to her to be
troubled
anymore.
It
was a strange place, and yet familiar, like deja vu. Beautifully
kept
grounds and gardens, complete with fountains and stone
walkways. Old ivy
covered buildings rose around her, as she
stolled along in this serene place.
"I've been here
before...I know it...but when...where is this..??"
Ryoko
could not remember, but it was a good place to be sure. The
sound of the
water gently splashing in the fountains, the light
summer breeze blowing the
scent of flowers...it was very
relaxing. The path led onto a courtyard.
Then she was no longer
alone. A figure sat on a stone bench across from
where she
entered, head bowed reading from a book. It was a man, dressed
in
an outfit similiar to the one Washuu was wearing when they first met,
and
his hair was...the same color as hers? Then he looked up at
her, and then
there was no mistaking his identity...
"Well, I finally found you again, Ryoko."
Bringing up her energy sword, Ryoko pounced.
"Wait..." but she had already
cut him in two. As his body began to evaporate
away from the cut,
he bowed his head and sighed resignedly - then faded away.
"Hmm,
well, that's a nice change from my old dreams!" Ryoko thought
and she
walked back into the garden, enjoying this hauntingly
familiar place
once
again.
Art
trained like a man possessed, intent on learning all he could in the
little
time left to him. Tenchi simply coached, and Art practiced
as only a driven man
can. Tenchi vaguely remembered something his
grandfather once said, about wanting
something too much and not
getting it...he couldn't recall the exact wording,
but Art
seemed to be folowing the concept. Five hours non-stop seemed to be
taking
it's toll.
"You should take a break Art, overtraining is couter-productive."
Art lowered the
katana he was holding. Sweat poured off of him as he sighed, "You
are
right of course. I just wish you would reconsider..."
Tenchi simply shugged, "I've already made promises..."
Art nodded, "It is a good time to stop for lunch I suppose."
Art
had a light lunch becasue he didn't want to slow himself down, but
Tenchi decided
to indulge himself a bit, to enjoy this luxury
while it lasted. He wondered what this
extra training would do to
his travel arrangements, worried that perhaps Art would try
other
ways to delay is departure. He didn't want to ask right out, for
politeness sake.
If his curiousity was not satisfied by Sunday
morning, he would just place a call to
his Grandfather.
Tenchi
took a stroll around the grounds while Art rested. He intended to
begin again
in two hours. As he took in the beautiful
surroundings, he thought of Ryoko, and how
much he missed her. He
laughed out loud, remembering all the times he tried to escape
from
her clutches. But it wasn't her he had feared, not at all...well,
the first few
times anyway. He was enjoying the surroundings, when
all of a sudden, he felt a jolt
of concern...for some reason he
felt Ryoko was in trouble, and then...all was
okay.
"Strange...but I should call there at a reasonable
time to make sure everything is
alright."
Art trained
for three more hours with Tenchi before calling it quits. "Well,
I'm going
to have a light dinner and get to bed. I'll need extra
rest for tomorrow."
"Good idea...I suppose you will
catch up on your rest Monday?" Tenchi asked...hoping
his
unspoken question would be answered.
"Oh no, back to the
office for me. I'll have a whole weekend worth of voicemail
and
e-mail waiting for me to catch up on. You'll be in
Fayetteville by then, sparring
with Nate no doubt."
"What is he like? You have fought with him already?"
"In a
word, big. Very tall, very strong. And not slow like you would expect
such a
heavily muscled guy to be. I'm hoping these techniques will
help me against him. It
is his strength which always seems to get
the best of me."
"Power can be redirected..."
"Ever try to redirect a freight train Tenchi?" Art joked.
"It is easier to redirect myself." Tenchi laughed.
"I guess you have to
experience Nate to understand." Art said with a knowing
smile,
"You'll
see."
The
girls all woke up about the same time, and made their way down to the
hotels
breakfast buffet. Washuu and Aeka seemed a little subdued,
but Mihoshi and Ryoko
were all fired up. At the entrance to the
dining area, a sign proclaimed "All you
can eat
buffet"
Ryoko and Mihoshi looked and each other with raised eyebrows.
"Ya think so?" Ryoko asked.
"I hope so!" Mihoshi beamed.
"Uh-oh!" Aeka and Washuu said in unison.
Washuu decided to have a Bloody Mary to
drink and ordered breakfast, deciding to leave
the buffet to the
hungry pair. Aeka followed suit, but chose orange juice instead.
"Do you suppose there will be anything left when they are finished?" Aeka asked.
"Nope," Washuu answered.
An hour
later, Ryoko and Mihoshi sat back behind a pile of plates, grinning
contentedly
with their hands resting on their stomachs. "I
should leave a big tip." Washuu said
resignedly.
After
checking out, they loaded up in the car and drove off. When no other
cars were
in sight, the car jumped ahead to within a couple miles
of Joey and Gregs place.
"Much better!" Aeka said,
and for some reason began to feel a bit nervous. Mihoshi
was
visibly excited. "Oh, I can't wait!"
Ryoko decided
then and there she would have a little talk with Greg in private
about
Mihoshi. The last thing she needed now was to have her
feelings trampled on by some
guy.
They pulled up to the
front door, and Mihoshi practially leapt out of the car. Aeka
stepped
out of the car gracefully, and Ryoko decided to do it the easy way,
with the
characteristic shimmering noise accompanying it.
"RYOKO" all three girls shouted in unison.
"Oops!" Ryoko whispered.
Hearing both the car and the shout, Greg walked
outside. Now Greg already thought
Aeka and Ryoko were fine babes,
but when he saw Mihoshi, he froze in his tracks.
As She stood
there, the light from the sun caught her just right -
highlighting
her hair, and making her eyes seem to sparkle. Greg
was simply dazzled. She then
turned her head slighty and saw him.
He wasn't as cute as she imagined him to be,
but she favored him
with a smile. A shot went through Gregs heart, and he was
stricken
by her beauty. Mihoshi then began to walk towards him, when suddenly
she
tripped on something. The other three saw this, and covered
their eyes, reluctant
to witness the impending disaster. What Greg
saw however, was a very agile Mihoshi
drop to the ground in a roll
and land on her feet in a crouch, then stand before
him with an
outstreched hand "Pleased to meet you, I'm Mihoshi...please be
nice to
me!" Greg took her hand and shook it. The others
looked out from behind their
hands, both suprised and pleased
nothing bad had happened.
Joey came to the door then, with only eyes for Aeka.
Introductions were made all around. Greg
couldn't get over the luck they were having,
now with four
beautiful women to spend the day with. They all climbed into
Washuu's
car, three sat in the front and three in back. Greg sat
btween Ryoko and Washuu in a
state of bliss while Joey sat with
Aeka between him and Mihoshi - who was full of
questions for both
the guys. Mostly about Disney she asked. Ryoko silently warned
her
mother about not using the cars tricks.
"You should talk dear, with that little phasing deal back at their place!" Washuu thought.
Ryoko winced at that, remembering to be a
little more careful. She wasn't used to this
hiding her powers
yet, and considered meditating on it a bit. So she slipped into
the
proper mental state all the way to the theme park.
After
finding a spot to park, they made their way to the entrance. As they
got close,
Ryoko spotted a familiar figure. Mentally she said,
"Hey Mom, isn't that the guy from
the club last night?"
Sure
enough, there was Kenny, waiting at the gate. He had traveled to the
area after
the club incident and stayed at a local hotel, intent
on finding this woman again who
had so intrigued him. In his hand
he held a small digital camera, and took many
pictures of the
group as they approached.
"Yep, thats him alright,"
Washuu thought back, "Damn, I guess I talked too much
last
night."
"washuu, hey Washuu!" Kenny said excitedly as they got close.
"Ryoko?" Washuu thought.
"All over it Mom..." and out loud, "excuse me a minute please."
Aeka looked at Ryoko strangely hearing her talk like that.
Ryoko had put much thought into
how she was going to act today, and certainly didn't
appreciate
this little interruption. Peeled off from the group and quickly
walked
ahead to intercept. Putting on her winningest smile, she
approached Kenny. "Hi
Kenny!" She wrapped him in a big
hug, at first shocking, then pleasing him. She
broke off the hug
and placed an arm around his shoulders and started guiding him
gently
but firmly towards the parking lot. "I have to talk to you about
something."
"Okay!" Kenny said, thinking he was
in luck. But as soon as they got past the first
couple rows of
cars, she forced him between two parked cars. Holding him from
behind
now she sat them both on the ground, "Hey..." he
started to protest.
"Now listen to me," Ryoko said
sternly, "We are going to sit here for just a couple
minutes
and talk. Got it?"
Kenny tried to struggle, but found
himself completely immobilized, as if gripped by
a sumo wrestler -
not a pretty girl.
"Got it?" Ryoko asked again, squeezing just a little bit for emphasis.
Grunting, "Yeah, yeah, I got it...I got it already!"
He just wasn't used to this sort of treatment.
"Okay, do you have a phone number?"
"Well yeah." He gave her his cell phone number.
"Alright, we'll give you a call, but we have other plans today okay?"
Kenny relaxed a bit. "Okay,
I'm really sorry. Didn't mean to crash your party, but I
had alot
of fun last night and you all just disappeared..."
"Okay, okay...sorry about the rough treatment too. Talk to you later."
Ryoko released her grip, and when Kenny turned
around...she was gone. He quickly stood
up and looked
around...nothing...she was nowhere to be seen.
"weird" he thought, and went to look for his limo.
Ryoko
materialized in a ladies room stall, and walked quickly to join the
rest of the group.
They had wandered through a few gift shops
already, as there were so many to walk past on
the way to the
rides. Ryoko got the impression that they were in a very expensive
shopping
mall. "Lets get to the rides already," she
said. Joey and Gregg quickly agreed and they
made their way to
Space Mountain. There was already a long line, and a sign said it was
an
hour wait from that point. They chatted it up during the wait,
Aeka and Joey were speaking
together quite a bit. Ryoko took this
as a good sign. Greg was engrossed in conversation
with Mihoshi,
who seemed slighly interested in the talk, but not really in
him.
"GUess I won't be needing to talk to him after all..." She thought.
"Mihoshi is a big girl, she can take care of herself." Washuu projected in thought.
"Yeah well, can't help myself." Ryoko thought back.
"That's fine, but it's you I'm worried about today."
"Why?"
"You just seem a little off, like something is bothering you."
Ryoko
considered for a bit before replying, but Washuu picked up on her
thoughts. "So you got
to kill the son-of-a-bitch for a change
huh?"
"Yeah, it was kind of weird though."
"I see that, wonder what that's all about?"
"Dunno. Oh well, I'll handle dreams like that no problem..."
"Check out Aeka and Joey. Definitely Chemistry there."
"Yeah, seems like Gregs striking out though. Mihoshi just being friendly it seems."
"Yeah. Oh well, I'm sure she'll enjoy the park at least today..."
The ride was a bit of a
disappointment to all the girls but Mihoshi. Washuu already had
a
design in her head for a new improved Space Mountain. Ryoko yawned
thoughout the whole
thing. As they were walking along trying to
decide where to go next, Ryoko thought of
Sasami. She stretched
out her mind to find her loyal cabbit...and images of carrots in
the
back shed flooded her mind, "So, my little friend got into the
vegetables today..."
Then the weight of that fact sunk in.
Out loud, "Mom, I have to go check on something..."
Instantly picking up on Ryoko's distress, "Sasami..." she thought back, and nodded.
"I'll
be back in a bit!" Ryoko said with forced cheerfulness, and
disappeared behind
a corner. Out of view, she phased high up into
the sky and flew at top speed back
to
Okayama...
Authors Notes:
Sorry about the long delay... Real life can take
alot of your time!
Told ya I'd keep writing! Anyways, the story is
gonna change gears for a bit.
Alot of stuff you'll come across is
gonna pop up again in the future. I'm gonna
try to keep it
interesting. Happy Reading!
Chapter 15
Yosho sat on the mountainside in front of the shrine, alone with his
thoughts. He had felt something the night before, something akin to
the barely noticeable ripple in the deep sea that becomes the massive
tidal wave as it approaches the shore. (Has it begun so soon?)
He did not know what exactly what was coming, but he knew what had to
be done in preparation because of Tsumani's counsel. He only hoped
that Tenchi would be able to achieve that which he could not. He did
not worry much, as he had a great deal of faith in his grandson. He
had done his part, and it was out of his hands now.
"It has begun."
He began to sink in a deep meditative state, when he was suddenly
knocked over, unconscious.
Ryoko landed next to Mihoshi's ship and phased inside to confirm her
fear that the prisoner was gone. She phased back outside and found
the faint tracks of his passage. She followed the trail which led
straight to Funaho. Then it led away in another direction, but with a
subtle difference - as if the tracks were made by someone with less
weight. They led about four miles through the woods to a paved road
where they disappeared. Feeling very upset, she phased up to the shrine
to find a knocked out priest. It was then she noticed the straight line
of knocked down trees that led off into the distance, the mark of her
high speed inbound path. Highly aggravated, she found a bucket of water
and dumped it onto the priest. Instead of the typical shocked
spluttering, Yosho simply opened his eyes and sat up calmly.
"You have some explaining to do old man!"
Yosho looked at Ryoko questioningly.
"SASAMI IS GONE!" she screamed at him accusingly.
Comprehension dawned on his face, and he calmly removed his glasses and
began wiping the drops of water off on a corner of his robe. He then
considered Ryoko for a moment, who looked ready to explode before
answering calmly, "I understand your concern Ryoko, but consider for a
moment - is Sasami in danger?"
Ryoko grabbed the front of his robe and lifted him clean off the ground
in one hand, energy sword igniting in the other. Yosho then realized
that he was the one in danger and needed to diffuse Ryoko immediately
and dispense with the cryptic philosophizing.
"Sasami is under the protection of Tsunami - only one of higher power
than her could be a danger - Sasami is perfectly safe."
Ryoko's grip only tightened and she moved her sword close to his throat,
"You were going to keep an eye on things while we were gone, and this
happens. You are supposed to be the calm dependable one here, how could
you let this happen?"
"Ryoko, there are higher powers at work here. Things beyond anyone's
control. I wish I understood it all myself. All I know is that Sasami
is safe, and there is a very good reason she is not here now."
Ryoko didn't know what to believe. Part of her wanted to accomplish
what she couldn't 700 years prior. Another part needed to know what
was going on. She stood there for what seemed to Yosho a long time, as
her innner conflict raged on - between the demon of old and the woman
Ryoko.
"Would you mind putting me down now."
Instead of putting him down, she pulled him to her face to face, her
energy sword crackled so close to his throat that the heat made him
uncomfortable.
"You are going to level with me right now, no more games, no more
bullshit. You are up to something. I don't know what exactly - but
this training, and sending Tenchi away - tell me what's going on."
Yosho considered this for a moment. There was so much to tell.
"Very well, Ryoko."
She set him down and her sword went away. He turned away from her and
walked to the edge of the stones paving the courtyard. Head bowed in
contemplation, he turned after a long moment and said, "It is important
that what I am about to share with you remain between us, and go no
further."
"Sure, whatever."
"That would include broadcasting to your Mother."
"Fine." With a visible effort, Ryoko concentrated on shutting off the
link.
"This all began long ago..."
Washuu was wondering how long Ryoko's disappearance would go without
being questioned when she felt her daughter shut down her end of the
link. (Hmmmm...) Thankfully, Mihoshi was engrossed by the
amusements, Greg engrossed by her, and Aeka was having a good enough
time not to dwell on it.
Morai peered out from his hiding place beside the road after the
primitive vehicle drove past. He had walked the road all night, dashing
off to the side whenever one approached. He was hungry, exhausted, and
spooked by what he had seen at the Juraian Space Tree. A space tree,
that was the only thing it could have been. His mind was a little foggy
about exactly what happened, and the more he tried to think about it the
more his head hurt, as if to say "don't go there." So he had to be
content with escape for now, if not off the planet at least out of the
cell. It was time to think about the here and now - and what his next
move would be. First, he had to find resources to exploit...
Tenchi woke up and called the house and got no answer. He tried the
shrine office with the same result. Concerned, but not knowing what to
do, he got up to get ready for his last day at Art's. He found him
training already, going through some of the new drills. Tenchi didn't
know whether to admire his dedication or pity him for his obsession.
Art noticed him and took a break. "You'll have to forgive me for
starting without you. I'm just trying to make the most of the time
I have left."
"Well, I do see improvement, but it takes a significant amount of time
to make any real changes in performance, no matter how hard you train.
Your dedication is admirable, but overtraining can actually hinder
progress."
"Well, it is hard not to train when you want to improve."
"Yes, but discipline is required. Most people must have discipline to
train on a regular basis, perhaps you should discipline yourself to
train less."
"Easier said than done, especially with the tournament approaching."
"Well, think of it this way, since I got here first, you will have more
time to practice what I've shown you than the others."
"Good point. So I shall take a short break, and speaking of the
tournament..."
Art walked over to a cabinet and pulled out an ornately carved cylinder.
"...here are two invitations for you. I hope to see you there."
Tenchi took the cylinder and removed the stopper at the end. Inside
were two pieces of parchment rolled up. He put the cap back on and set
it down. "Thank you, it should be an interesting show."
Art went to retrieve a water bottle and Tenchi began some warm up
exercises. He needed to clear his mind of worries, and he could think
of nothing better than a good round of fencing. He figured Art would
be good and tired, and he himself felt well rested and ready for
anything. He picked two bokken off the wall and handed one to Art.
Tenchi decided he would hold nothing back, and not retreat to pure
defensive at all. Squaring off, they began. Tenchi found out pretty
quick that Art wasn't worn down at all, but it didn't take long to get
him that way. With a full day of rest and a few nights of solid sleep,
Tenchi was in top form. After about 10 minutes of getting smacked
around, Art called a halt.
"You've been holding back on me..."
"No."
"No? Then why am I doing so poorly today?"
"You aren't, but my distractions have been removed."
Art gave him a knowing smile, "Well, in that case I understand."
"Maybe a long break is in order. I have to make some phone calls, I
would suggest a long period of meditation."
"Ok, I'll see you back here around 1:30 then."
"Yes Art, thank you."
Tenchi went back to his room and dug out his phone.
The sun was setting as Ryoko and Yosho descended the last few stairs
from the shrine to the house. Yosho had his head bowed, and Ryoko
looked rather sullen. After all of the revelations, she didn't know
how to take it, what to say, or how to handle it, but she had promised
to keep them to herself. Close to the house, Ryoko turned to Yosho and
said, "I don't know how to feel about you now."
"I understand. Please keep in mind it is all for the good. I only
hope now that you will find it in your heart to forgive someday."
Ryoko gave him a wry, skeptical look and phased away. With a long
sigh, he turned and began the long trek upstairs.
Ryoko phased straight into Tenchi's bedroom and laid down to think.
She felt something under her head and grabbed it. An envelope
addressed to her, it could only be...she tore it open anxiously
and read it:
My dearest Ryoko,
Never does a moment go by, without you on my mind. I was blind Ryoko.
How could I have not seen my love for you? Maybe because I was blinded
by its brightness? This past week without you has been the longest of
my life, or so it seems, by not having you near me. In missing you, I
feel my only comfort is how much more wonderful it will be when we are
together at last. I Love you, and I wish I could see you when I tell
ou again. I want to look into your lovely golden eyes and see you smile.
I miss having your arms around me. I want to hear your sweet voice in
my ear as I hold you close. That is all I look forward to now. Until
then,
Love,
Tenchi
It was enough to settle her seething consciousness, cooling her anger
down. She smelled the letter, and could pick up a faint scent of him.
"He loves me." It still seemed almost unreal to her after everything,
but to read that, and to relive in her mind the events of the past week
- to say it aloud made it real, and for a short time, it became a
comforting mantra. "He loves me, he loves me, he loves me..."
RING...RING RING...RING
Snapping bolt upright, she phased down to the telephone and snatched
the handset off the hook, "...Masaki residence?"
"Hello Ryo-chan."
The fog on her mind evaporated at that endearment.
"Tenchi, oh Tenchi...I miss you."
"I miss you too Ryoko. How are things going back home?"
Ryoko paused before answering, weighing her response carefully.
"Oh, everything is just fine Tenchi, just fine..."
Tenchi could hear it in her voice, and he could feel something was
wrong, but he decided not to press it. "Where is everyone else?"
"Well - Aeka, Washuu and Mihoshi are at Disney, and your Grandfather
is at the shrine. I don't know where everyone else is, I'm all alone
here in the house. I wish you were here with me."
"I wish I was there too."
"I'm leaving here today, going to my next host. I'm going to miss this
place..."
"But not Art, right?"
"Yeah. I didn't like the way he looked at you either."
"Oh my Tenchi, feeling a little jealous?"
"Jealous, well no, it's just..."
"Yes you are silly! Don't deny it."
"Well, I didn't like it."
"You know I'm yours forever, and there's not a person in this entire
universe who could ever take me from you."
"And I am the same way Ryo-chan. I love you."
"I love you too Tenchi."
"Ok, I have to get back to things here. Goodbye Love."
"Bye Tenchi."
Ryoko put the handset back down and thought that she would be okay with
things after all.
Morai appeared to be strolling casually through town, although he was
highly alert and observant. He was starving. Thankfully, many on this
planet used a primitive method of drying clothes, so after helping
himself to a few items and cleaning up in a stream, at least he looked
presentable. Mostly, he observed the locals interacting. It looked
like his next step was to obtain some of the local currency. But how
to do it without drawing attention to himself? He didn't know how
crime was handled on this primitive planet, but his imagination ran
wild with stonings and lynch mobs. He saw a sign in the window of a
restaurant, "Help Wanted" and thought maybe it was the best course of
action for now. Resignedly, he went in and asked about the sign. The
owner came out to talk to him. Morai considered his words cafefully,
as he tried to adjust to the local dialect. They needed a dishwasher
so badly they immediately put him to work, paying him 'under the table'.
He figured he could stay here for a bit and plan his next step.
Aeka, Washuu, Joey and Greg were about to head out of the park when
Ryoko joined them. Washuu didn't know she was coming so they were all
suprised when they noticed Ryoko walking alongside them as if she had
been there all along. Joey noticed her first.
"Hey Ryoko."
"Hey Joey, is Aeka behaving herself?"
"Better than yourself, disappearing all day." Aeka quipped.
"Hey Ryoko, you missed out on all the fun today," Mihoshi added.
Washuu just looked at her questioningly and tapped her temple, Ryoko
just looked down and shook her head no. She wasn't ready to open the
link again, despite the effort it took to keep it shut. She hadn't
fully dealt with everything yet.
"So where's Sasami?" Mihoshi asked.
"Yes, why has my sister not joined us today."
Ryoko said, "Joey would you be a dear and get me a Coke?"
She looked at Greg and said, "You go with him too."
He obeyed without question. After they left, Ryoko let it all out.
"Sasami and our 'guest' are both missing."
She saw the distress rise in everyones expressions.
"I looked for hours trying to find them, but they are both gone. The
only reason I'm back here is becasue Yosho said no harm could befall
Sasami since she is under the protection of Tsunami."
"How did this happen? Where could she be?" Was Aeka's tearful
response.
"I don't know, but I think it would be a good idea if we all went
home."
Greg and Joey returned and the ladies informed them of their untimely
departure.
"We'll have to take a raincheck on dinner guys," Ryoko informed them.
They were disappointed obviously, and appeared nervous during the fast
drive back to their place. They were unceremoniously dumped off at
their front door and Ryoko shouted out the window as they drove away,
"We'll call you later!"
Once out of sight around the corner, Washuu phased the car close to
home.
"Now that's a shortcut. I wish I could phase that far." Ryoko
thought out loud.
"You probably can now." Washuu said.
"Huh?"
"Haven't you noticed an expansion of your abilities lately?"
The first thing to pop into her mind was the night she dropped in on
Tenchi, and her control of the link slipped for just a moment.
"Not THOSE abilities! I mean your ability to learn, how fast you can
fly, things like that."
"well, I did notice my speed through the air getting a little out of
hand."
"Yes, but we'll talk about that later, and other things. Now lets
find out what happened around here."
They pulled up to the house and Washuu went straight to her lab.
Mihoshi had been uncharacteristically silent, and went straight to her
ship. Ryoko simply disappeared and Aeka found herself alone suddenly.
Not knowing what to do, she walked to Funaho.
After putting Art through a set of grueling drills designed to solidify
what he had been taught, he went back to his room and packed his bags.
Art was going to have his private jet take Tenchi to the next place.
Art had him eat one last dinner with him before sending him on his way.
"I'd like to thank you again for your time here Tenchi."
"You are welcome. I appreciate the lengths to which you have gone to
make my stay here very pleasant. Thank you for allowing Ryoko to
visit."
"It was my pleasure. It isn't often we have such excitement around
here."
Tenchi suppressed a wry smirk at that remark.
"Well, she never lets things get boring."
"I'm sure. I wish you luck with Nate."
"Thanks."
After dinner Art sent Tenchi on his way, while Alan took him out to the
runway in the jeep. "I trust your enjoyed your stay here Tenchi."
Tenchi thought back to a certain night and said, "Best time of my
life."
Tenchi boarded the plane and found he was the sole passenger. He
allowed himself to relax and drifted off to sleep. He woke when the
plane touched down in North Carolina. It pulled to a stop in front of
a small building away from the main terminal. He said goodbye to the
pilots and went inside. What struck Tenchi as odd was the fact that
the minute he was off the plane they turned around and headed back to
the runway. Shrugging his shoulders, he made his way inside.
"Masaki Tenchi?"
The man waiting for him inside struck Tenchi as more giant than man.
He guessed him to be almost two meters tall, and about 130 kilograms.
He noticed Tenchi's suprised look and smiled, his white teeth
contrasting sharply against his dark skin. The smile made Tenchi think
of a wolf considering a nice fat deer. He bowed and gave Tenchi the
traditional greetings. Tenchi did the same, then struck out his hand
to greet in the Western manner. Thankfully Nate's japanese was pretty
decent. Tenchi remembered Art's comment about deflecting a freight
train, and smiled. This was probably one of the things his Grandfather
wanted him to experience - getting run over by a train.
Nate tossed his bags in the back of his pickup truck and they headed
into town.
"I'm glad you made it here. I was wondering if Mr. Hamilton was going
to delay you permanently."
"I see you know Art pretty well." Tenchi laughed out.
"Enough to know he is a spoiled brat. One of these days I won't go so
easy on him at the tournament. Soften him up for Ernie a little bit."
"Ernie?"
"Ernesto."
"Ah, I see."
"I have a little suprise for you mid-week."
"Oh?"
"A taste of home so to speak."
That made Tenchi think of the two girls Art had set up for him and
frowned. Considering the size of this guy, Tenchi decided several
things at once - no shotgun shooting, no visit from Ryoko, no drinking,
no nothing but training and rest.
Nate had a modest house in a secluded area surrounded by woods. He had
a large garage next to the house as well. Nate showed him to the room
he would be staying in and he deposited his bags there. Downstairs they
relaxed to chat. Nate offered him a beer which Tenchi politely refused.
He had some green tea instead. The home phone rang and from the brief
conversation it seemed that he was speaking to his girlfriend and he
wanted to talk later since he had a guest. The call ended after a while
and Nate said, "Sorry, I was out of town for a while and she misses me,
but I told her I would be busy this week. I'll have to make it up to
her sometime."
"Ah, I understand."
"Then you must have a girl back home then?"
"Yes."
"Mine drives me crazy sometimes."
"I know the feeling."
Nate and Tenchi then talked quite at length about their women
experiences, much to each others amusement.
Dawn began as the slow creeping of gray light through a cloudy sky.
Just when it began to resemble daylight a misty rain began to fall.
The weather seemed to mirror the somber mood at the Masaki household.
Washuu had not emerged from her lab all night. Aeka was still in bed,
after trying unsuccessfully to contact Tsunami by Funaho late into the
night she passed out exhausted. Mihoshi never returned from her ship.
Ryoko didn't sleep a wink. She felt a strange restlessness. The link
with her mother was still shut, and she found that the longer she kept
it that way the easier it was to continue. She thought that might be
another ability that had expanded. Late into the night, watching the
odd infomercials on TV, she found herself philosophic. She thought
about her past, Yosho's revelations, and the future. Her mind would
have collapsed into chaos if not for one thing - her love for Tenchi.
He was like a star in her mind, and her other thoughts were like the
planets, moons, comets, and asteroids that orbited about that star in
their own complex ballet of physics. Even when considering her darkest
fears she never lost sight of that shining point. That was his gift to
her all those years ago when he had first smiled at her at the cave.
She thought he could never begin to understand how much he meant to her.
Meditation seemed to be a good idea. A way to settle her thoughts into
stability and get some rest. Settling onto the couch in the lotus
position, she began.
Aeka found her like this when she decided to get up hours later.
Sitting on the couch perfectly still, her face serene, and her three
gems glowing fiecely. Concerned, and not knowing what to do, she braved
the gloomy weather to see her brother at the shrine. Yosho showed her
inside immediately and poured her some hot tea. She related what she
saw and her concerns.
Yosho could feel the increased energy through his link with Funaho, so
the news did not suprise him. "Ryoko is healing herself Aeka, nothing
more."
"Healing herself? Healing what? Is she hurt?"
"Five thousand years Aeka. Seven hundred of which was sealed paralyzed
in a cold pool of water, awake and aware. The rest of that time she
had her mind manipulated, her body tortured, and the gods only know what
else. Can you even imagine living that long, let alone spending that
time as a puppet, a plaything for a sick evil man? It is a wonder she
can act normally at all. Think on how much hurt all that has caused
her."
"I never knew..."
"Mihoshi does."
"Yes, I suppose so."
"And from what I have been told, she only experienced fifty years of
Ryoko's existence. That alone was enough to hurt Mihoshi badly."
"Is there anything that can be done about that?"
"I'm not sure, but I am working on it."
"And Ryoko?"
"Given enough time, she will be fine." (I only hope we have enough
time) he thought.
"And Sasami?" she asked, worry etched deep on her face.
"Sasami is the safest one of all, where ever she happens to be."
After a few moments of silent contemplation, Aeka said, "Then I shall
look after Mihoshi then."
Yosho simply nodded assent. Aeka took her leave and went to Yukinojo.
She found the GP detective curled up in a ball on her bed, wide awake
and staring at the wall.
"Mihoshi?"
After a long moment Aeka thought she hadn't been heard, but before she
could say her name again Mihoshi whispered, "It's all my fault, I'm so
sorry..."
"No Mihoshi, you are not to blame..."
"It's all my fault..."
"No it isn't..."
"I'm so sorry..."
"Mihoshi, please, come to the house with me. We can talk in there..."
"It's all my fault..."
Aeka tried for some time to get her to go along, but she just lay there
and repeated herself over and over. She decided she knew someone better
suited to this job.
Despite recent events, Ryoko was feeling pretty good. She lay on her
back on her favorite rafter - rereading the letter Tenchi sent. After
her meditation she felt much better, and was beginning to drift off
into sleep when she heard the door slam shut.
"RYOKO!"
(What did I do now?)
Ryoko phased down to Aeka, "What's up?"
"I need your help, Mihoshi has driven herself crazy with guilt and is
laying in bed on her ship babbling about it being her fault."
"Okay, lets go."
They walked out to the ship together. Ryoko asked, "So what was she
saying?"
"She just repeats the same thing over and over,'It's my fault, I'm
sorry'"
Ryoko considered this as she walked out to the ship. Once inside the
two girls kneeled at Mihoshi's bedside. Ryoko lay her hand on
Mihoshi's back.
"Mihoshi, are you okay?"
"I'm so sorry..."
"Mihoshi, look at me..."
"It's all my fault..."
"MIHOSHI!"
"I'm so sorry..."
Frustrated, Ryoko scooped up Mihoshi in her arms and disappeared.
Aeka, taken slightly aback by this, decided to go see where they went.
She didn't have to go far. Ryoko had phased right outside and dropped
Mihoshi in the lake. Spluttering and making her way to shore was a very
sad and serious looking Mihoshi. She seemed more composed as she walked
out of the water. She stood for a minute, looking at the ground before
shaking herself off. She looked around a little bit, then started
walking along the lakeshore, eyes downcast.
Aeka and Ryoko stood side by side on the dock watching her recede into
the distance. Ryoko looked on impassively but Aeka showed a great deal
of concern. Aeka glanced over at her companion and noticed this. "How
can you be so calm? How can you just stand there and let her go like
that?" Aeka started to run after her when Ryoko grabbed her arm.
"Let her go."
Aeka turned to look into her eyes, and while her face remained calm,
even serene, the windows to her soul were wide open. "Let her go, she
has to get through this on her own."
"If that is so, why did you drop her in the water?"
"She just needed a little push is all."
"How can you be so sure of this? When did you start knowing what is
best for others?"
Ryoko was unsure how to answer that, because somehow she just knew it.
"She just needs time alone, give it to her." And having said that, she
walked towards the shrine. Aeka then decided she'd start on the
domestic chores, since everyone else seemed otherwise preoccupied.
Looking ahead to lunchtime, she looked through the freezer and found
some TV dinners. Noboyuki ate them often when he worked late nights.
Wondering if Washuu would like some, she decided to check on her. She
was suprised to find the doorway to her lab was locked. She could
never remember it being that way before. Muttering disparaging remarks
about Hakubi women, she began work around the house.
Ryoko stalked into the shrine courtyard. Yosho sat on the porch of the
building waitng as if he had been expecting her. "So, are you ready to
begin training again?"
"Maybe, but are you the one who should be training me?"
Yosho tossed her the hilt to one of the training swords. "Interesting
question, perhaps we shall find an answer in sparring."
"Works for me."
Yosho activated the training sword with his usual katana blade, but
Ryoko selected a straight blade about as long as her energy sword.
Yosho raised an eyebrow at this and assumed a defensive stance.
Ryoko's face was no longer impassive, but an angry mask. She attacked
aggressively, holding nothing back. Sensing this, Yosho let all the
power of Jurai at his disposal flow into him, and met her in kind.
Yosho found himself almost immediately overwhelmed, but remained calm.
As he knew through long experience, losing your temper can lead to
mistakes. He was counting on this advantage. Ryoko however, was
superhumanly fast and strong. Yosho found that he was using all his
skills and tricks just to defend himself, a position he wasn't used to.
But shortly, he saw his opening. He committed himself to the strike,
but saw almost too late it was an elaborate setup. Ryoko leapt into
the air over the horizontal strike, striking downward towards his head.
Yosho dropped to his knees while pivoting to his left and bringing his
hilt up to deflect the descending blade behind his back. Ryoko switched
the direction of her blade at the end of its arc, and Yosho did a back
flip over the return strike. He held the blade pointed downwards for
the completion of the flip catching her blade on his as she reversed
again. The defense became even more desperate after that, as Yosho
became wary of every opening he saw. He knew his only chance was to get
closer to his tree. Ryoko enjoyed a moment of levity when Yosho went
on the run. He battled a retreating defense through the woods down the
side on the mountain. Ryoko pursued him relentlessly. Their path
through the woods was marked by trees felled as their swords swung
powerfully towards each other. Yosho tried to use a falling tree to his
advantage, but Ryoko anticipated it. As they drew closer to the tree,
he felt his power grow. He began to feel relieved and more confident
when Funaho was in sight. He expanded his mind link with the tree to
increase his senses and awareness. It was then that the pace of combat
slowed, or seemed to, as his sense of time was distorted. Ryoko seemed
to move in slow motion, and she became easier to defend against. He
decided he would relax now and take his time, and simply analyze her
technique so he could give her a more effective critique when they were
finished. It was after a time that he could not find any flaws. When
he realized this, he also perceived that Ryoko might have been holding
back herself. He tried to get a strike in on her, and was very
disconcerted when she winked at him and batted his blade casually aside,
as if she had seen it coming. If he wasn't seeing things in slow motion
he would have never blocked her counter strike. He realized he was in
trouble then. Every time he thought he found a hole in her defense, she
easily blocked him. After a few more failed attempts, he realized that
she knew what he was going to do before he did it. So for the first
time ever, he knew he was going to lose. Leaping back, he deactived his
sword and bowed. Ryoko stood down, and her anger had melted away to
satisfied amusement.
"Looks like I need a new teacher." Ryoko smirked.
Yosho looked down silently for a while, regarding his bleeding hands.
It was obvious he was no longer needed. There was someone, however, who
could show her a thing or two. He returned her smirk, "I can arrange
that."
Joey and Greg were kicked back on the couch, eating bowls of cereal and
channel surfing. Greg seemed a little bit off to Joey, he was mumbling
to himself as he flipped from station to station. Joey was slightly
amused, knowing the cause of his friends ire.
"What's bugging you man?"
"Nothing."
"Bull, look at you acting all miserable. What gives?"
Greg was silent for a while before answering, "Dude, I totally struck
out yesterday. She was all nice and friendly, but it was probably the
way she is. They totally dumped us yesterday."
"No they didn't. Seemed to me that they had something important come
up."
"Sheesh man, you are so naive. Thats what they ALL say."
"I believe them. Of course I wasn't happy our time was cut short, but
they'll be in touch."
"Yeah right. I mean, look at them all. They're all hot, so why would
they even bother with a couple of poor English teachers. I can read
women pretty well, and I could see she wasn't really interested in me."
"What about Aeka and me?"
"Huh?"
"What could you read from her?"
Greg was silent for a bit while he thought. "Sorry dude, I wasn't
really paying that much attention."
"So you might have missed the fact that we got on pretty well together."
Greg was silent for a bit again before replying, "Dude, you have to
admit that there is something off with them."
"What do you mean?"
"C'mon, it's obvious. The way they look, talk, dress, act. It's
different."
"Well, sure. They are a bunch of wealthy eccentrics, but I think they
are good people."
"Alright, they might be, but something else bugs me. That girl Ryoko,
she's like a psycho or something. She scares me a bit."
"Oh? Why's that?"
"Just the look she gives me sometimes, is all. Like I said, I can
read women, and she's dangerous is all I'm saying."
(I could care less as long as she's trying to fix me up with Aeka) Joey
thought.
"Whatever man, I'm sure we'll hear from them soon, besides, can you
honestly tell me you wouldn't go hang with them again if you had the
chance?"
Greg didn't answer, he just gave him a dirty look.
"HA! Thought so. Anyways, I hope they call before I go home."
"Yeah, sure was nice of your folks to fly you home for your birthday."
"Be nice to be home for a bit." Joey said, but didn't look like he
meant it.
Greg shrugged his shoulders and turned his attention back to his
breakfast.
It was a quiet evening back at the house. It was just Aeka, Ryoko and
Noboyuki at the dinner table. Washuu remained locked in her lab, and
Yosho was up at the shrine. Ryoko made an excellent dinner, but almost
nobody tasted their food - eating they just went through the motions.
Everyone was concerned about Sasami and Mihoshi. Noboyuki, while
concerned, acted as he always did, as if nothing unusual were happening.
It was when they were finished that he saw something to make him take
notice. Aeka got up to help Ryoko clean up, when Ryoko said, "Wait."
Aeka looked at her questioningly. Ryoko furrowed her brow a moment
in concentration, and then the table instantly appeared cleared and
clean. She then shook her head as if to clear it and got up herself.
"How?" was all Aeka could say.
"Dunno, just occured to me and I tried it." She then phased into the
kitchen to check to see if what she visualized had occured. Sure
enough, all the dishes were away and clean. "Nice" she whispered,
then started considering some more experimentation with her abilities,
but then thought it might be a good idea to talk to her mother before
she tried anything else. She found the door the way Aeka had, locked.
It was then that she remembered she had shut down their telepathic link,
and decided to open it back up so she could get her attention. It was
like opening a door in a dark room to one that is brightly lit, and the
light is too bright, so you shut your eyes and slam the door. Shaking
her head again to clear it, she wondered what was going on, and if it
had anything to do with what Yosho had told her, or that weird incident
at the club. She thought of Tenchi and worried. It was all so
confusing, and scary. She could only hope they could get through it
all together. She missed him so much now, and needed to be by his side,
but knew he needed this time apart to prepare. She needed to as well,
but for what, she didn't know.
--------------------------------------------------------------------
Sorry about the long wait, but I keep my promises
